Selected quad for the lemma: christian_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
christian_n church_n particular_a union_n 1,483 5 10.0681 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27069 Which is the true church? the whole Christian world, as headed only by Christ ... or, the Pope of Rome and his subjects as such? : in three parts ... / by Richard Baxter ... Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1679 (1679) Wing B1453; ESTC R1003 229,673 156

There are 45 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

abassia_n armenia_n egypt_n syria_n the_o georgian_n the_o jacobite_n those_o false_o call_v by_o you_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o the_o african_n greek_n muscovite_n the_o britain_n seot_n swede_n dane_n belgian_n saxon_n helvetian_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o german_n transilvanian_o hungarian_n french_a etc._n etc._n which_o now_o disow_v the_o papacy_n who_o be_v some_o country_n never_o under_o the_o pope_n some_o country_n at_o first_o under_o he_o and_o after_o reject_v he_o and_o some_o at_o first_o from_o under_o his_o government_n next_o under_o he_o and_o after_o repent_v and_o all_o of_o they_o have_v be_v christian_n from_o their_o first_o conversion_n to_o this_o day_n can_v i_o speak_v plain_a but_o num._n 42._o he_o grant_v that_o all_o that_o be_v true_a christian_n be_v one_o kingdom_n or_o church_n of_o 8._o christ_n but_o deny_v that_o these_o be_v true_a christian_n and_o pag._n 84._o he_o will_v seem_v to_o give_v some_o reason_n for_o his_o denial_n say_v i_o deny_v it_o if_o they_o be_v independent_a on_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n answ._n 1._o even_o now_o he_o abstract_v from_o this_o but_o now_o they_o be_v no_o christian_n unless_o they_o be_v dependendents_n on_o the_o pope_n such_o a_o denial_n be_v a_o easy_a task_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o their_o write_n but_o what_o need_v there_o then_o so_o many_o ambages_fw-la and_o large_a volume_n to_o bring_v out_o such_o a_o short_a and_o crude_a assertion_n can_v you_o not_o have_v say_v this_o without_o all_o the_o rest_n he_o be_v no_o christian_n that_o depend_v not_o on_o the_o pope_n but_o be_v it_o not_o incumbent_n on_o you_o to_o prove_v it_o undoubted_o it_o be_v 1._o in_o foro_fw-la scholastico_fw-la as_o a_o affirmer_n 2._o in_o foro_fw-la civili_fw-la &_o ecclesiastico_fw-la as_o a_o accuser_n and_o till_o you_o have_v prove_v it_o what_o need_v they_o or_o i_o care_v for_o yoùr_fw-la word_n must_v all_o man_n pass_v for_o no_o christian_n that_o a_o priest_n or_o jesuit_n will_v say_v be_v none_o or_o be_o i_o and_o all_o man_n disoblige_v from_o love_v all_o those_o as_o christian_n who_o such_o as_o you_o will_v affirm_v to_o be_v no_o christian_n love_n be_v easy_o destroy_v if_o this_o much_o will_v do_v it_o but_o it_o cost_v more_o than_o so_o to_o cause_v it_o pag._n 85._o he_o add_v let_v they_o have_v be_v as_o visible_a as_o you_o please_v that_o be_v nothing_o to_o i_o so_o be_v the_o arrian_n sabellian_o montanist_n etc._n etc._n prove_v they_o be_v no_o more_o than_o one_o visible_a congregation_n 9_o of_o christian_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o orthodox_n christian_n that_o be_v the_o present_a controversy_n answ._n i_o hope_v we_o shall_v find_v out_o the_o controversy_n at_o last_o though_o it_o seem_v as_o hard_a almost_o as_o to_o resolve_v it_o how_o oft_o must_v i_o repeat_v the_o same_o proof_n again_o my_o proof_n be_v this_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o hold_v all_o essential_a to_o christianity_n not_o apostatise_v from_o the_o whole_a or_o any_o essential_a part_n be_v true_a christian_n but_o such_o be_v they_o before_o mention_v 1._o that_o they_o be_v baptise_a be_v not_o deny_v and_o baptise_v be_v christening_n and_o suppose_v the_o profession_n of_o all_o that_o be_v essential_a to_o christianity_n or_o else_o it_o can_v not_o make_v they_o christian_n 2._o no_o man_n that_o profess_v himself_o a_o christian_n must_v be_v take_v to_o be_v no_o christian_n till_o he_o be_v convict_v by_o lawful_a proof_n because_o as_o sincerity_n or_o heart-consent_n to_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v our_o christianity_n as_o invisible_a before_o god_n so_o baptism_n and_o profess_a consent_n to_o that_o covenant_n be_v our_o visible_a christianity_n before_o man_n every_o man_n be_v the_o expositor_n of_o his_o own_o belief_n and_o resolution_n but_o that_o these_o church_n have_v apostat●…zed_v from_o the_o whole_a or_o any_o essential_a part_n of_o christianity_n be_v unprove_v and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v suppose_v as_o every_o particular_a man_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o christian_n who_o be_v baptize_v and_o profess_v it_o till_o his_o profession_n be_v disprove_v so_o much_o more_o whole_a country_n and_o church_n that_o profess_v christianity_n must_v not_o be_v suppose_v without_o proof_n to_o be_v no_o christian_n if_o a_o papist_n will_v say_v to_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o city_n prove_v that_o you_o be_v no_o thief_n no_o adulterer_n no_o murderer_n no_o liar_n no_o traitor_n or_o else_o i_o will_v take_v you_o for_o such_o i_o think_v they_o may_v more_o just_o say_v prove_v that_o we_o be_v such_o or_o else_o we_o will_v take_v you_o for_o a_o standerer_n and_o that_o they_o be_v of_o one_o church_n i_o prove_v all_o christian_n be_v one_o church_n but_o those_o be_v christian_n therefore_o of_o one_o church_n the_o major_n be_v certain_a they_o that_o be_v the_o member_n and_o subject_n of_o one_o christ_n be_v of_o one_o church_n all_o christian_n be_v the_o member_n and_o subject_n of_o one_o christ_n therefore_o they_o be_v of_o one_o church_n all_o that_o have_v the_o seven_o term_n of_o union_n before_o mention_v out_o of_o eph._n 4._o be_v of_o one_o church_n but_o such_o be_v these_o before_o name_v here_o remember_v 1._o that_o i_o plead_v not_o for_o the_o christianity_n of_o any_o that_o be_v prove_v to_o deny_v indeed_o any_o one_o essential_a point_n of_o christianity_n but_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v this_o man_n that_o every_o thing_n institute_v by_o christ_n and_o so_o every_o word_n in_o the_o bible_n be_v such_o a_o essential_a nor_o that_o our_o church_n or_o religion_n be_v so_o strange_a a_o thing_n as_o to_o have_v no_o perpetual_a integral_a part_n nor_o accident_n but_o what_o will_v not_o some_o man_n have_v a_o face_n to_o defend_v 2._o that_o this_o same_o man_n have_v already_o maintain_v that_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o he_o be_v not_o sufficient_o propound_v and_o that_o he_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o agree_v among_o they_o that_o any_o more_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v than_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o reward_n for_o good_a work_n and_o yet_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n must_v be_v no_o christian_n nor_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o let_v it_o be_v still_o remember_v to_o acquit_v the_o eastern_a and_o southern_a church_n from_o the_o papist_n charge_v of_o heresy_n as_o be_v nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o 1._o that_o the_o accuser_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o calumniator_n till_o they_o prove_v it_o by_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o common_a justice_n 2._o that_o if_o they_o can_v prove_v dioscorus_n e._n g._n a_o eutychian_a that_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o all_o the_o bishop_n that_o adhere_v to_o he_o be_v such_o for_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n that_o multitude_n adhere_v to_o he_o because_o they_o think_v he_o no_o eutychian_a and_o derodon_n the_o supposit●…_n have_v undeniable_o prove_v that_o dioscorus_n say_v but_o what_o his_o predecessor_n cyril_n have_v oft_o say_v who_o you_o approve_v and_o many_o because_o they_o think_v the_o judgement_n unjust_a that_o judge_v he_o so_o and_o cast_v he_o out_o and_o many_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o seat_n yea_o many_o for_o fear_n of_o death_n by_o the_o people_n that_o be_v affect_v to_o he_o as_o their_o patriarch_n though_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o cause_n in_o question_n he_o that_o read_v the_o bishop_n at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n part_n cry_v out_o prostrate_a on_o the_o earth_n miseremini_fw-la miseremini_fw-la non_fw-la dissentimus_fw-la else_o kill_v we_o here_o we_o dare_v not_o go_v home_o if_o we_o desert_n and_o rail_v against_o our_o patriarch_n before_o another_o be_v choose_v the_o people_n will_v kill_v we_o and_o another_o part_n of_o they_o confess_v that_o fear_n make_v they_o subscribe_v at_o the_o council_n at_o ephes._n 2._o and_o some_o cry_v out_o away_o with_o they_o they_o be_v heretic_n who_o cry_v non_fw-la dissentimus_fw-la may_v well_o judge_v that_o all_o be_v not_o heretic_n that_o clamour_n call_v so_o 3._o if_o they_o can_v prove_v those_o few_o bishop_n that_o be_v open_o accuse_v and_o note_v to_o be_v eutychian_o that_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o the_o rest_n be_v so_o 4._o if_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o many_o than_o be_v so_o that_o will_v not_o prove_v that_o those_o that_o now_o there_o inhabit_v be_v so_o 5._o and_o of_o nestorianism_n there_o be_v less_o public_a show_n of_o proof_n 6._o and_o indeed_o the_o main_a body_n of_o the_o common_a
his_o shameful_a reformation_n of_o syllogism_n and_o pretence_n of_o logical_a form_n sect._n 6._o he_o deny_v protestant_n to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n i_o prove_v it_o his_o silly_a cavil_n at_o the_o form_n of_o the_o argument_n sect._n 7._o protestant_n profess_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n prove_v his_o cavil_n shame_v sect._n 8._o his_o oft_o repeat_v reason_n confute_v of_o not_o receive_v the_o church_n exposition_n sect._n 9_o the_o novelty_n and_o discord_n of_o popery_n the_o confusion_n in_o council_n sect._n 10._o my_o second_o argument's_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o hold_v all_o essential_o the_o popish_a faith_n explain_v sect._n 12._o my_o three_o argument_n creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v with_o they_o too_o little_a and_o yet_o a_o insufficient_a proposal_n make_v christianity_n itself_o unnecessary_a sect._n 12._o he_o give_v up_o his_o cause_n confess_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o our_o explicit_a belief_n sect._n 13._o my_o four_o argument_n his_o ridiculous_a deny_v that_o to_o deny_v the_o minor_a be_v to_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n sect._n 14._o the_o minor_a prove_v all_o protestant_n as_o such_o profess_v to_o love_n god_n ergo_fw-la sincere_a protestant_n do_v love_n he_o what_o miracle_n believe_v in_o the_o pope_n do_v sect._n 15._o he_o have_v no_o way_n to_o deny_v that_o protestant_n profess_v true_a faith_n but_o by_o his_o impudent_a deny_v 1._o that_o we_o profess_v to_o love_v god_n 2._o and_o that_o we_o feel_v that_o we_o do_v love_v he_o sect._n 20._o my_o second_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o perpetual_a visibility_n of_o our_o church_n confound_v he_o sect._n 21._o scripture_n sufficiency_n sect._n 22._o my_o three_o argument_n and_o his_o shameful_a answer_n sect._n 25._o my_o four_o argument_n prove_v the_o visibility_n of_o our_o church_n not_o only_o as_o christian_a but_o as_o without_o popery_n ten_o sub-argument_n for_o that_o 1_o from_o the_o twenty-eighth_a canon_n of_o conc._n calce_v 2._o from_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o old_a writer_n against_o heretic_n sect._n 28._o 3._o from_o tradition_n prove_v 4._o from_o church_n never_o subject_a to_o rome_n his_o citation_n brief_o confute_v s●…ct_n 30._o 5._o from_o the_o non-subjection_n even_o of_o the_o imperial_a church_n sect._n 32._o 6._o from_o gregory_n the_o first_o be_v testimony_n sect._n 33._o 7._o from_o their_o confession_n aen._n silvius_n reynerius_n canus_n binnius_n vindicate_v sect._n 38._o 8._o phocas_n give_v the_o primacy_n to_o boniface_n sect._n 39_o 9_o their_o liturgy_n new_a sect._n 40._o twelve_o instance_n of_o new_a article_n of_o the_o papist_n faith_n which_o he_o dare_v not_o answer_n s●…ct_n 42._o the_o ten_o argument_n he_o yield_v the_o cause_n in_o sense_n s●…ct_n 43._o notable_a testimony_n unanswered_a s●…ct_n 44._o papist_n differ_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la sect._n 47._o what_o heretic_n be_v or_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n full_o open_v his_o shameful_a exclaim_n against_o i_o for_o distinguish_v sect._n 48._o fifty_o six_o of_o philastrius_n heresy_n name_v many_o be_v small_a matter_n and_o many_o notorious_a certain_a truth_n sect._n 49._o the_o woeful_a work_n of_o hereticate_a council_n sect._n 50._o council_n hereticated_a pope_n and_o one_o another_o almost_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n hereticate_v one_o another_o sect._n 55._o his_o reason_n answer_v for_o unchurch_v all_o heretic_n sect._n 60._o their_o doctrine_n of_o sufficient_a proposal_n fullier_n confute_v and_o their_o hereticate_a and_o unchurch_v themselves_o evince_v mr._n johnson_n alias_o terret_n explication_n of_o seven_o term_n of_o our_o question_n examine_v and_o his_o confusion_n manifest_v chap._n i._n question_v 1_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o the_o catholic_n church_n 1_o w._n j._n the_o catholic_n church_n be_v all_o those_o visible_a assembly_n congregation_n or_o community_n of_o christian_n who_o live_v in_o unity_n of_o true_a faith_n and_o external_a communion_n with_o one_o another_o and_o in_o dependence_n of_o their_o lawful_a pastor_n r._n b._n qu._n 1._o whether_o you_o exclude_v not_o all_o those_o convert_v among_o infidel_n that_o never_o have_v external_a communion_n nor_o be_v member_n of_o any_o particular_a visible_a church_n of_o which_o you_o make_v the_o catholic_n to_o to_o be_v constitute_v w._n j._n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o such_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n in_o voto_fw-la or_o quantum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la est_fw-la resolve_v to_o be_v of_o that_o particular_a church_n actual_o which_o shall_v or_o may_v be_v design_v for_o they_o by_o that_o pastor_n to_o be_v include_v in_o my_o definition_n r._n b._n you_o see_v then_o that_o your_o definition_n signify_v nothing_o no_o man_n know_v your_o meaning_n by_o they_o w._n j._n you_o shall_v present_o see_v that_o your_o exception_n signify_v less_o than_o nothing_o r._n b._n 1._o you_o make_v the_o catholic_n church_n to_o consist_v only_o of_o visible_a assembly_n and_o after_o you_o allow_v such_o to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v no_o visible_a assembly_n w._n j._n i_o make_v those_o convert_a infidel_n visible_a assembly_n as_o my_o definition_n speak_v though_o not_o actual_a member_n of_o any_o particular_a visible_a church_n for_o though_o every_o particular_a visible_a church_n be_v a_o assembly_n of_o christian_n yet_o every_o assembly_n of_o christian_n be_v not_o a_o particular_a visible_a church_n i_o do_v not_o therefore_o allow_v such_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v no_o visible_a assembly_n as_o you_o misconceive_v r._n b._n 1._o will_v any_o man_n have_v understand_v that_o by_o visible_a assembly_n the_o man_n have_v not_o mean_v only_o churches_n but_o also_o family_n school_n city_n &_o c_o 2._o do_v he_o not_o here_o express_o deny_v all_o those_o person_n to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v not_o member_n of_o some_o other_o visible_a assembly_n and_o if_o a_o man_n be_v a_o pilgrim_n a_o hermit_n or_o if_o one_o or_o many_o be_v cast_v upon_o a_o uninhabited_a coast_n and_o if_o any_o be_v member_n of_o no_o visible_a assembly_n as_o merchant_n ambassador_n to_o infidel_n etc._n etc._n when_o will_v he_o prove_v that_o this_o unchristen_v or_o unchurch_v they_o r._n b._n 2._o you_o now_o mention_v subjection_n to_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n as_o sufficient_a which_o in_o your_o description_n or_o definition_n you_o do_v not_o w._n j._n be_o i_o oblige_v to_o mention_v all_o thing_n in_o my_o definition_n which_o i_o express_v after_o in_o answer_v your_o exception_n ans._n all_o that_o belong_v to_o a_o notify_a definition_n r._n b._n 3._o if_o to_o be_v only_o in_o voto_fw-la resolve_v to_o be_v of_o a_o particular_a church_n will_v serve_v then_o inexistence_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v only_o in_o voto_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_n church_n prove_v no_o man_n a_o member_n of_o it_o because_o it_o be_v terminus_fw-la diminuens_fw-la but_o the_o contrary_n see_v then_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n inexistence_n in_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v not_o of_o necessity_n to_o inexistence_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n why_o do_v you_o not_o only_o mention_v it_o in_o your_o definition_n but_o confine_v the_o church_n to_o it_o w._n j._n i_o make_v they_o actual_o inexistent_a in_o some_o visible_a assembly_n according_a to_o my_o definition_n and_o in_o voto_fw-la only_o in_o a_o particular_a church_n now_o every_o particular_a family_n or_o neighbourhood_n nay_o two_o or_o three_o gather_v in_o prayer_n be_v a_o actual_a assembly_n r._n b._n strange_a doctrine_n so_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n to_o our_o christianity_n and_o salvation_n that_o we_o be_v member_n of_o a_o christian_a city_n or_o village_n or_o fair_a or_o market_n or_o some_o meeting_n and_o so_o all_o christian_n that_o live_v solitary_o in_o wilderness_n or_o among_o turk_n or_o heathen_n be_v all_o unchristened_a and_o damn_a w._n j._n st._n hierome_n say_v ecclesia_fw-la est_fw-la plebs_fw-la unita_fw-la episcopo_fw-la in_o this_o consist_v your_o fallacy_n that_o you_o esteem_v none_o to_o be_v actual_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n unless_o they_o be_v actual_a member_n of_o some_o particular_a church_n which_o i_o deny_v r._n b._n i_o think_v very_o it_o have_v be_v i_o that_o be_v deny_v it_o all_o this_o while_n this_o be_v dispu●…ing_v in_o the_o dark_a will_v you_o say_v that_o you_o mean_v in_o voto_fw-la who_o can_v understand_v you_o then_o when_o you_o say_v they_o must_v be_v of_o visible_a assembly_n and_o mean_v that_o they_o need_v not_o be_v of_o any_o but_o wish_v they_o be_v or_o purpose_n to_o be_v so_o w._n j._n it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o they_o be_v actual_o of_o some_o assembly_n or_o congregation_n of_o christian_n though_o it_o be_v no_o particular_a church_n r._n b._n 1._o here_o be_v a_o new_a exposition_n of_o solomon_n vae_fw-la soli_fw-la woe_n to_o he_o that_o be_v alone_o for_o he_o be_v unchristened_a by_o it_o or_o unchurch_v o_o poor_a anchorite_n hermit_n that_o be_v alone_o and_o shipwrack_v christian_n etc
etc._n 2._o here_o be_v a_o new_a find_v privilege_n of_o have_v company_n if_o in_o a_o tavern_n or_o alehouse_n and_o of_o be_v marry_v and_o in_o a_o family_n such_o may_v be_v christian_n when_o the_o solitary_a can_v who_o will_v have_v think_v that_o the_o papist_n have_v hold_v this_o but_o you_o say_v nothing_o to_o the_o case_n of_o they_o that_o be_v convert_v to_o christ_n by_o a_o solitary_a preacher_n that_o never_o tell_v he_o of_o a_o supreme_a pastor_n as_o the_o english_a and_o dutch_a convert_v many_o indian_n can_v they_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o that_o they_o hear_v not_o of_o w._n j._n whether_o he_o be_v name_v or_o no_o the_o church_n must_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v sufficient_o explicate_v to_o they_o as_o have_v some_o prudent_a manner_n of_o government_n so_o that_o they_o must_v be_v instruct_v to_o render_v obedience_n to_o such_o governor_n as_o christ_n institute_v in_o his_o church_n which_o be_v virtual_o to_o a_o chief_a pastor_n r._n b._n 1._o so_o they_o that_o take_v the_o pope_n for_o antichrist_n may_v virtual_o be_v papist_n be_v content_a with_o that_o virtue_n 2._o but_o i_o think_v that_o even_o that_o general_a belief_n of_o pastoral_n government_n be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la bene_fw-la esse_fw-la rather_o than_o ad_fw-la esse_fw-la of_o a_o christian._n r._n b._n 1._o i_o note_v by_o the_o way_n to_o be_v hereafter_o remember_v his_o description_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n as_o give_v by_o hierome_n that_o it_o be_v plebs_fw-la unita_fw-la episcopo_fw-la and_o cyprian_n say_v ubi_fw-la 2_o episcopus_fw-la ibi_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la and_o ignatius_n to_o every_o church_n there_o be_v one_o altar_n and_o one_o bishop_n with_o the_o prosbyter_n and_o deacon_n but_o by_o this_o rule_n they_o make_v those_o that_o be_v now_o call_v parish-church_n to_o be_v no_o church_n but_o only_a part_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n 2._o note_v that_o in_o his_o definition_n he_o make_v live_v in_o external_a communion_n essential_a to_o those_o congregation_n or_o community_n of_o christian_n who_o make_v up_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o tell_v we_o not_o whether_o it_o must_v be_v a_o civil_a or_o only_o a_o religious_a communion_n or_o what_o religious_a communion_n beside_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o dependence_n on_o pastor_n it_o must_v be_v if_o by_o those_o word_n pag._n 3._o every_o particular_a family_n or_o neighbourhood_n he_o express_v that_o external_a communion_n then_o if_o their_o pastor_n never_o give_v they_o god_n word_n sacrament_n or_o prayer_n it_o may_v serve_v 3._o he_o say_v p._n 4._o in_o this_o consist_v your_o fallacy_n that_o you_o esteem_v none_o to_o be_v actual_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n unless_o they_o be_v actual_a member_n of_o some_o particular_a church_n which_o i_o deny_v which_o be_v his_o mere_a fiction_n of_o which_o i_o be_v so_o far_o from_o give_v he_o any_o occasion_n that_o i_o be_v charge_v it_o as_o a_o error_n on_o himself_o reasonable_o suppose_v that_o by_o visible_a assembly_n he_o have_v mean_v church_n 4._o note_v that_o he_o make_v it_o essential_a to_o the_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o they_o depend_v on_o their_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o yet_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o virtual_a subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n by_o subject_v themselves_o to_o christ_n manner_n of_o government_n which_o be_v essential_a 1._o be_v not_o all_o protestant_n and_o other_o christian_n that_o own_v not_o the_o pope_n true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n then_o while_o they_o subject_v themselves_o in_o general_a to_o christ_n manner_n of_o government_n 2._o he_o subject_v himself_o to_o no_o governor_n who_o do_v it_o not_o to_o some_o existent_a individual_a for_o the_o universal_a exi_v not_o but_o in_o the_o individual_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v this_o individual_a than_o subjection_n to_o some_o other_o be_v more_o essential_a than_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o who_o be_v that_o who_o must_v be_v prefer_v before_o he_o q._n 2._o what_o be_v that_o faith_n in_o unity_n whereof_o all_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v live_v be_v it_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o be_v believe_v or_o of_o part_n and_o of_o what_o part_n w._n j._n of_o all_o either_o explicit_o or_o implicit_o r._n b._n he_o may_v easy_o have_v know_v that_o it_o be_v explicit_a belief_n which_o the_o question_n mean_v for_o his_o implicit_a belief_n be_v the_o actual_a belief_n of_o nothing_o but_o the_o general_a and_o not_o of_o any_o unknown_a particular_n where_o there_o be_v no_o object_n in_o esse_fw-la cognito_fw-la vel_fw-la percepto_fw-la there_o be_v no_o act_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o object_n essentiate_v the_o act_n in_o specie_fw-la and_o where_o only_o the_o general_a object_n be_v perceive_v and_o no_o particular_a e._n g._n all_o that_o god_n say_v in_o scripture_n be_v true_a when_o one_o word_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o know_v there_o be_v no_o object_n for_o a_o particular_a belief_n but_o it_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o this_o or_o that_o in_o particular_a that_o we_o inquire_v of_o e._n g._n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n etc._n etc._n your_o implicit_a belief_n be_v actual_a belief_n of_o the_o general_a but_o of_o particular_n it_o be_v actual_o none_o at_o all_o as_o common_a reason_n tell_v we_o his_o reply_n to_o this_o i_o shall_v answer_v by_o part_n in_o order_n r._n b._n we_o have_v here_o a_o most_o implicit_a account_n of_o the_o implicit_a faith_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o 3_o church-member_n the_o man_n will_v make_v the_o ignorant_a believe_v that_o their_o school_n be_v agree_v of_o the_o sense_n when_o he_o may_v easy_o know_v the_o contrary_n i_o mention_v different_a sense_n of_o implicit_a faith_n 1._o when_o particular_n be_v know_v and_o believe_v actual_o but_o confuse_o and_o not_o distinct_o but_o in_o gross_a so_o dr._n holden_n in_o analys_n sid_n seem_v to_o take_v it_o so_o the_o part_n be_v see_v or_o know_v oft_o in_o the_o whole_a so_o a_o purblind_a man_n see_v all_o the_o letter_n man_n tree_n etc._n etc._n before_o he_o i_o see_v all_o the_o sand_n in_o the_o hourglass_n or_o much_o but_o not_o distinct_o one_o sand_n from_o another_o this_o be_v a_o real_a knowledge_n of_o the_o very_a thing_n but_o a_o imperfect_a knowledge_n 2._o but_o beside_o this_o there_o be_v a_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n only_o in_o their_o general_a nature_n which_o be_v a_o real_a knowledge_n but_o partial_a and_o imperfect_a as_o when_o i_o see_v something_o come_v towards_o i_o afar_o of_o and_o know_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o man_n or_o a_o beast_n i_o say_v it_o be_v a_o animal_n or_o a_o wight_n but_o what_o i_o know_v not_o this_o be_v not_o to_o know_v the_o thing_n formal_o but_o to_o know_v aliquid_fw-la rei_fw-la somewhat_o of_o that_o thing_n 3._o there_o be_v also_o a_o knowledge_n which_o beside_o the_o general_a nature_n extend_v to_o some_o inadequate_a conception_n of_o the_o form_n but_o leave_v out_o other_o part_n of_o the_o conception_n which_o be_v essential_a as_o when_o one_o know_v so_o much_o of_o a_o man_n as_o that_o he_o have_v a_o rational_a soul_n and_o not_o that_o he_o have_v a_o body_n or_o that_o his_o soul_n be_v a_o virtus_fw-la intellectiva_fw-la but_o not_o that_o it_o be_v volitiva_fw-la or_o when_o one_o know_v that_o fire_n be_v formal_o a_o virtus_fw-la illuminativa_fw-la but_o not_o that_o it_o be_v calefactiva_fw-la or_o motiva_fw-la this_o be_v a_o real_a knowledge_n but_o partial_a and_o not_o formal_a be_v not_o of_o the_o whole_a essence_n so_o when_o one_o know_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n but_o not_o to_o be_v man_n or_o man_n and_o not_o god_n or_o to_o be_v a_o teacher_n but_o not_o a_o king_n or_o priest_n this_o be_v not_o proper_o to_o know_v christ_n but_o somewhat_o of_o christ._n 4._o there_o be_v a_o knowledge_n of_o mere_a universal_a proposition_n which_o be_v but_o organical_a as_o to_o thing_n and_o this_o be_v no_o knowledge_n of_o all_o the_o particular_a thing_n speak_v of_o nor_o oft_o of_o many_o nor_o sometime_o of_o any_o of_o they_o nor_o of_o the_o particular_a proposition_n which_o shall_v be_v further_o know_v nor_o of_o the_o conclusion_n that_o shall_v be_v infer_v from_o both_o for_o instance_n man_n may_v say_v that_o omnis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la est_fw-la immaterialis_fw-la and_o one_o may_v mean_v and_o know_v by_o it_o but_o as_o the_o sadducee_n or_o hobbs_n or_o gassendus_fw-la that_o a_o spirit_n be_v a_o chimaera_n &_o si_fw-la daretur_fw-la spiritus_fw-la immaterialis_fw-la foret_fw-la and_o another_o may_v doubt_v and_o mean_v si_fw-la detur_fw-la spiritus_fw-la immaterialis_fw-la est_fw-la and_o another_o may_v hold_v that_o there_o
be_v christian_n be_v this_o a_o satisfactory_a answer_v and_o yet_o if_o you_o will_v know_v the_o truth_n from_o their_o common_a write_n the_o faith_n of_o their_o church_n contain_v these_o great_a body_n 1._o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la 2._o all_o the_o decree_n of_o their_o general_a council_n if_o not_o also_o the_o provincial_n and_o pope_n decretal_n that_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la 3._o all_o their_o unwritten_a tradition_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la which_o they_o have_v yet_o to_o bring_v forth_o as_o need_n require_v and_o do_v you_o not_o approve_v his_o modesty_n that_o say_v if_o any_o such_o be_v find_v that_o believe_v all_o this_o 2._o the_o second_o sort_n of_o their_o church-member_n be_v all_z who_o believe_v explicit_o all_o article_n and_o whatever_o belong_v to_o they_o in_o particular_a by_o reason_n of_o their_o respective_a office_n ans._n but_o he_o tell_v you_o not_o a_o word_n what_o article_n these_o be_v nor_o what_o belong_v to_o their_o office_n whether_o it_o be_v all_o the_o article_n of_o all_o the_o creed_n or_o also_o of_o their_o council_n decree_n or_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v know_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v about_o their_o office_n and_o be_v here_o any_o notice_n how_o to_o know_v a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n any_o more_o than_o in_o the_o former_a he_o that_o believe_v all_o that_o he_o shall_v believe_v be_v a_o christian_n but_o be_v there_o any_o such_o and_o what_o be_v that_o all_o and_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v they_o 3._o his_o three_o sort_n of_o member_n be_v those_o who_o so_o believe_v all_o thing_n necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la vel_fw-la praecepti_fw-la extend_v to_o all_o the_o adult_n ans._n and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o the_o same_o again_o we_o know_v none_o but_o the_o adult_n that_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o so_o here_o we_o be_v tell_v that_o all_o man_n that_o believe_v all_o thing_n command_v be_v christian_n we_o be_v tell_v this_o before_o but_o it_o be_v with_o if_o any_o such_o be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o who_o know_v by_o this_o what_o your_o all_o be_v when_o we_o find_v man_n that_o do_v all_o command_v and_o sin_v not_o we_o will_v hope_v to_o find_v man_n that_o know_v all_o reveal_v and_o have_v no_o ignorance_n yet_o here_o be_v no_o visible_a church_n 4._o his_o four_o sort_n be_v all_z those_o who_o believe_v in_o that_o manner_n all_o thing_n necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la according_a to_o the_o first_o opinion_n of_o the_o more_o ancient_a doctor_n but_o what_o those_o thing_n be_v we_o be_v not_o yet_o tell_v but_o five_o word_n set_v down_o with_o a_o etc._n etc._n and_o be_v here_o yet_o a_o word_n to_o satisfy_v any_o man_n of_o reason_n what_o their_o faith_n be_v or_o what_o christianity_n be_v or_o what_o make_v a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n or_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o union_n but_o reader_n have_v god_n leave_v we_o so_o much_o in_o the_o dark_a be_v christianity_n any_o thing_n or_o nothing_o if_o something_o have_v it_o not_o a_o essence_n which_o may_v be_v define_v be_v this_o all_o our_o notice_n of_o it_o that_o man_n that_o know_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o believe_v it_o be_v christian_n or_o such_o as_o believe_v five_o article_n &_o cetera_fw-la judge_v now_o whether_o their_o church_n be_v not_o invisible_a and_o if_o any_o little_a part_n of_o it_o be_v visible_a what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o rest_n or_o to_o that_o visibility_n of_o particular_a member_n he_o tell_v we_o these_o be_v almost_o all_o christian_n and_o yet_o question_v whether_o any_o of_o the_o first_o be_v find_v and_o the_o rest_n be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v find_v than_o they_o 5._o and_o his_o five_o sort_n he_o confess_v himself_o to_o be_v uncertain_a which_o yet_o it_o be_v doubt_v be_v no_o small_a part_n that_o go_v for_o papist_n and_o note_v i_o pray_v you_o that_o it_o be_v the_o present_a church_n which_o they_o use_v to_o approach_v to_o for_o necessary_a resolution_n and_o the_o recentior_n be_v more_o the_o present_a church_n than_o the_o ancient_n and_o according_a to_o these_o 1._o their_o church_n be_v confess_o doubtful_a or_o unknown_a as_o to_o most_o or_o multitude_n of_o member_n 2._o and_o note_n that_o their_o article_n be_v but_o two_o that_o god_n be_v and_o that_o he_o reward_v work_n all_o the_o common_a heathen_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o the_o mahometan_n be_v of_o the_o papist_n faith_n and_o church_n according_a to_o this_o opinion_n 3._o but_o mark_v reader_n another_o desperate_a corruption_n that_o baptism_n must_v concur_v with_o these_o two_o article_n o_o horrid_a corruption_n of_o christianity_n itself_o be_v this_o antiquity_n and_o tradition_n do_v the_o christian_a church_n use_v to_o baptize_v man_n that_o believe_v neither_o in_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o they_o do_v but_o believe_v a_o god_n and_o a_o rewarder_n do_v you_o baptize_v such_o in_o your_o church_n i_o suppose_v even_o pope_n stephen_n himself_o will_v have_v be_v for_o the_o re-baptining_a of_o such_o reader_n if_o one_o of_o we_o have_v charge_v such_o doctrine_n on_o the_o papist_n as_o this_o their_o champion_n do_v shall_v we_o not_o have_v be_v think_v to_o slander_v they_o viz._n that_o their_o late_a doctor_n hold_v that_o all_o that_o believe_v explicit_o but_o a_o god_n and_o a_o rewarder_n and_o be_v baptize_v be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o consequent_o that_o all_o that_o believe_v but_o this_o much_o shall_v be_v baptize_v that_o be_v all_o the_o mahometan_n and_o almost_o all_o the_o heathen_n in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v baptism_n and_o the_o creed_n come_v to_o this_o but_o i_o confess_v if_o the_o world_n be_v persuade_v of_o this_o the_o pope_n can_v make_v his_o use_n of_o it_o for_o when_o he_o be_v once_o take_v for_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n if_o he_o can_v but_o prove_v all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o church_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o what_o need_v they_o now_o their_o feign_a embassy_n and_o submission_n to_o prove_v the_o abassine_n armenian_n and_o greek_n to_o be_v of_o their_o church_n when_o heathen_n and_o mahometan_n be_v prove_v of_o it_o and_o yet_o be_v protestant_n no_n part_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o a_o live_a body_n may_v be_v define_v by_o head_n shoulder_n arm_n though_o there_o be_v a_o doubt_n among_o philosopher_n whether_o hair_n humour_n etc._n etc._n be_v animate_v or_o part_n ans._n but_o 1._o it_o be_v know_v then_o that_o there_o be_v visible_o head_n and_o shoulder_n etc._n etc._n but_o you_o tell_v we_o not_o how_o to_o know_v any_o individual_a person_n to_o be_v visible_a member_n of_o your_o church_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v some_o man_n that_o hold_v all_o that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o hold_v make_v none_o visible_a while_o we_o be_v not_o tell_v either_o what_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v or_o by_o what_o profession_n or_o proof_n it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o they_o do_v so_o when_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o sincere_a justify_v faith_n and_o love_n do_v prove_v true_a christian_n and_o that_o such_o there_o be_v it_o be_v agree_v that_o this_o prove_v but_o a_o church_n as_o invisible_a or_o unknown_a to_o we_o because_o we_o know_v not_o who_o have_v this_o sincerity_n so_o be_v it_o when_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v man_n that_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o till_o it_o be_v know_v what_o that_o be_v no_o profession_n can_v thereby_o prove_v they_o christian_n 2._o but_o what_o if_o you_o have_v tell_v we_o how_o to_o know_v those_o man_n that_o be_v certain_a or_o eminent_a member_n of_o your_o church_n be_v it_o nothing_o to_o you_o to_o leave_v all_o the_o world_n beside_o almost_o uncertain_a whether_o they_o be_v in_o the_o church_n or_o not_o how_o know_v you_o who_o to_o admit_v to_o your_o sacramental_a communion_n or_o to_o use_v as_o a_o christian_a when_o a_o congregation_n of_o many_o thousand_o person_n call_v papist_n meet_v you_o can_v tell_v how_o many_o of_o these_o be_v of_o your_o church_n and_o yet_o you_o give_v they_o the_o eucharist_n and_o it_o seem_v by_o you_o that_o they_o must_v be_v baptise_a though_o you_o know_v not_o after_o whether_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n remember_v reader_n that_o our_o question_n be_v not_o what_o mercy_n god_n show_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o whether_o any_o out_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v save_v but_o it_o be_v what_o be_v the_o faith_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o member_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o whether_o papist_n make_v it_o not_o uncertain_a and_o whether_o he_o
you_o have_v say_v a_o word_n to_o prove_v that_o christ_n institute_v the_o universal_a head-ship_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o rather_o do_v you_o not_o overthrow_v it_o yourself_o by_o such_o argue_v see_v 1._o the_o headship_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n as_o you_o confess_v 2._o it_o never_o be_v in_o the_o universal_a church_n either_o institute_v by_o christ_n or_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n one_o hour_n but_o only_o for_o a_o time_n receive_v by_o a_o corrupt_a oppress_a part_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o the_o pope_n have_v cast_v out_o divers_a thing_n institute_v by_o christ_n for_o continuance_n as_o be_v prove_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o though_o the_o king_n be_v absent_v it_o be_v only_o the_o king_n and_o subject_n that_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o kingdom_n the_o deputy_n be_v but_o a_o officer_n and_o not_o essential_a he_o reply_v it_o be_v so_o indeed_o de_fw-mi facto_fw-la but_o suppose_v as_o i_o do_v that_o a_o vice-king_n be_v by_o full_a authority_n make_v a_o ingredient_n into_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o kingdom_n then_o sure_o he_o must_v be_v essential_a ans._n yes_o by_o very_o good_a reason_n if_o he_o be_v make_v essential_a he_o be_v essential_a and_o now_o i_o understand_v what_o be_v your_o proof_n you_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v so_o but_o if_o it_o be_v so_o in_o our_o case_n than_o the_o pope_n be_v essential_o so_o the_o church_n constitutive_a head_n that_o whenever_o he_o die_v the_o church_n be_v dead_a unless_o you_o can_v say_v as_o our_o law_n do_v of_o the_o king_n papa_n non_fw-la moritur_fw-la and_o when_o the_o church_n have_v be_v two_o or_o near_o three_o year_n without_o it_o be_v no_o church_n and_o when_o it_o have_v two_o or_o three_o pope_n it_o be_v no_o church_n or_o two_o or_o three_o church_n but_o say_v w._n i._n this_n be_v evident_a in_o our_o present_a subject_n for_o though_o all_o the_o pastor_n in_o christ_n church_n be_v only_o his_o officer_n and_o deputy_n yet_o you_o can_v deny_v such_o officer_n be_v now_o essential_a to_o his_o visible_a church_n ans._n 1._o when_o i_o hear_v the_o word_n evident_a i_o look_v for_o something_o but_o i_o have_v nothing_o but_o universal_a you_o can_v deny_v it_o and_o what_o true_a christian_n ever_o yet_o deny_v it_o but_o i_o do_v not_o remember_v that_o ever_o i_o hear_v it_o dispute_v before_o affirm_v or_o deny_v he_o that_o will_v deny_v it_o will_v say_v that_o as_o all_o the_o mayor_n bailiff_n and_o other_o magistrate_n of_o corporation_n be_v indeed_o essential_a part_n of_o those_o corporation_n and_o these_o corporation_n be_v the_o noble_a integral_a part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o no_o essential_a part_n of_o it_o so_o that_o if_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v resolve_v into_o a_o king_n and_o mere_a common_a subject_n only_o it_o be_v a_o kingdom_n still_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n particular_a gather_a church_n be_v the_o noble_a integral_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o not_o essential_a and_o pastor_n be_v essential_a part_n of_o those_o particular_a church_n but_o if_o all_o the_o particular_n and_o pastor_n shall_v cease_v the_o church_n will_v be_v a_o church_n still_o while_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n and_o mere_a christian_n but_o this_o never_o will_v be_v in_o this_o world_n because_o christ_n will_v not_o only_o have_v a_o church_n but_o a_o well-formed_a organise_v church_n those_o that_o have_v rather_o use_v the_o word_n essential_a of_o the_o pastor_n will_v say_v that_o as_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v the_o only_a essential_a part_n of_o a_o man_n and_o yet_o the_o brain_n heart_n and_o liver_n may_v be_v call_v essential_a part_n of_o the_o body_n as_o distinct_a from_o the_o rest_n because_o without_o these_o it_o be_v not_o corpus_fw-la org●…nicum_fw-la and_o so_o not_o humanum_fw-la so_o though_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a soul_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o officer_n may_v be_v essential_a part_n of_o his_o body_n as_o organical_a capable_a of_o such_o a_o soul_n and_o though_o the_o other_o will_v reply_v that_o this_o be_v but_o a_o deceive_a metaphor_n christ_n be_v not_o only_o the_o soul_n but_o the_o head_n and_o no_o organical_a member_n be_v more_o than_o noble_a integral_n because_o if_o a_o intellectual_a separation_n be_v make_v the_o church_n be_v a_o church_n still_o in_o such_o a_o conception_n yet_o all_o this_o be_v but_o a_o controversy_n of_o the_o aptitude_n of_o the_o word_n essential_a in_o that_o case_n we_o be_v agree_v that_o officer_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n and_o yet_o saint_n paul_n 1_o cor._n 12._o call_v they_o but_o eye_n and_o hand_n and_o never_o head_n but_o reserve_v that_o title_n to_o christ_n alone_o yea_o even_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o apostle_n and_o yet_o if_o any_o officer_n be_v essential_a it_o will_v be_v apostle_n who_o be_v call_v foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o the_o house_n but_o none_o of_o they_o the_o head_n 2._o but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o our_o controversy_n what_o if_o pastor_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n viz._n that_o there_o be_v some_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v any_o more_o essential_a to_o it_o than_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n or_o antioch_n if_o so_o then_o 1._o before_o peter_n be_v feign_v bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o church_n be_v no_o church_n all_o the_o while_n that_o he_o dwell_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o antioch_n 2._o and_o then_o if_o rome_n be_v burn_v or_o the_o bishop_n of_o it_o cease_v the_o church_n be_v no_o church_n sir_n our_o true_a question_n be_v whether_o a_o traitorous_a usurper_n of_o universal_a sovereignty_n receive_v by_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o refuse_v by_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n not_o as_o whether_o the_o heart_n or_o head_n but_o a_o scab_n or_o cancer_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o body_n after_o some_o vain_a repetition_n pag._n 82._o he_o repeat_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o fraudulent_a argument_n which_o he_o call_v the_o force_n of_o his_o discourse_n viz_o no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o 5._o visible_a but_o that_o which_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n ergo_fw-la no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n be_v christ_n true_a church_n save_o that_o ans._n i_o will_v therefore_o repeat_v the_o sum_n of_o my_o answer_n viz._n the_o word_n congregation_n be_v ambiguous_a 1._o either_o it_o mean_v a_o company_n meet_v together_o 2._o or_o a_o number_n of_o such_o congregation_n own_v one_o superior_a be_v part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 3._o or_o the_o universal_a church_n itself_o according_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n a_o congregation_n be_v call_v the_o same_o either_o because_o the_o same_o man_n live_v or_o because_o the_o survivor_n dwell_v in_o the_o same_o place_n or_o because_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o profession_n in_o the_o two_o first_o respect_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o any_o congregation_n continue_v the_o same_o for_o man_n die_v and_o place_n may_v be_v conquer_v or_o ruin_v in_o the_o three_o sense_n all_o true_a christian_a congregation_n in_o the_o world_n be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o species_n as_o christian_a from_o the_o begin_n to_o this_o day_n ii_o in_o the_o second_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n congregation_n i_o answer_v like_a as_o to_o the_o former_a the_o man_n die_v the_o place_n be_v mutable_a but_o as_o to_o the_o common_a christian_a profession_n they_o be_v the_o same_o that_o they_o have_v be_v but_o as_o to_o the_o extent_n of_o diocese_n neither_o you_o nor_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o they_o have_v alter_v scotus_n petavius_n and_o doctor_n hammond_n who_o hold_v that_o bishop_n without_o presbyter_n be_v first_o settle_v must_v hold_v that_o a_o church_n then_o be_v but_o one_o assembly_n or_o no_o more_o than_o one_o bishop_n can_v speak_v to_o but_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la all_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v not_o long_o before_o they_o widen_v by_o degree_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o church_n of_o abassia_n armenia_n jerusalem_n alexandria_n etc._n etc._n be_v visible_a and_o have_v be_v from_o their_o beginning_n and_o some_o of_o they_o before_o rome_n be_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n smyrna_n thessalonica_n etc._n etc._n be_v and_o have_v be_v such_o and_o some_o church_n be_v visible_a which_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n that_o sometime_o do_v viz._n the_o church_n of_o britain_n in_o england_n and_o scotland_n at_o first_o own_v it_o not_o and_o after_o do_v receive_v it_o and_o after_o that_o cast_v it_o off_o again_o but_o it_o be_v visible_a and_o have_v be_v from_o its_o beginning_n the_o church_n of_o denmark_n sweden_n transilvania_n and_o divers_a country_n of_o germany_n be_v not_o
church_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n nor_o be_v rome_n itself_o so_o but_o ever_o since_o their_o beginning_n they_o have_v be_v visible_a sometime_o obey_v the_o pope_n and_o sometime_o reject_v he_o the_o abassine_n and_o several_a other_o extra-imperial_a church_n never_o obey_v he_o the_o most_o of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o eastern_a and_o african_n sometime_o obey_v he_o as_o the_o chief_a in_o the_o empire_n by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o sometime_o they_o cast_v he_o off_o when_o the_o eastern_a empire_n cast_v he_o off_o but_o they_o never_o obey_v he_o as_o the_o sovereign_a bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n iii_o in_o the_o three_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n congregation_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o universal_a church_n i_o confess_v that_o i_o can_v show_v you_o no_o universal_a church_n now_o visible_a reject_v the_o pope_n for_o the_o universal_a leave_v out_o no_o part_n though_o a_o corrupt_a part_n and_o while_o papist_n own_v he_o i_o can_v say_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n disow_v he_o but_o i_o can_v prove_v 1._o that_o the_o primitive_a universal_a church_n never_o own_v any_o universal_a head_n or_o governor_n but_o christ_n and_o his_o twelve_o apostle_n who_o indefinite_a charge_n may_v be_v call_v universal_a 2._o that_o the_o universal_a church_n never_o own_v the_o roman_a universal_a sovereignty_n 3._o that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o own_o it_o at_o this_o day_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o whole_a may_v be_v denominate_v from_o the_o major_a part_n we_o may_v say_v that_o now_o the_o universal_a church_n disow_v he_o and_o now_o reader_n answer_v these_o like_a sophism_n and_o you_o have_v answer_v this_o man_n of_o art_n 1._o no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o acknowledge_v the_o patriarch_n in_o the_o empire_n at_o least_o heretofore_o ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ._n answ._n 1._o but_o another_o be_v part_n and_o the_o best_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n 2._o and_o none_o that_o do_v or_o ever_o do_v acknowledge_v those_o patriarch_n be_v the_o whole_a church_n 3._o and_o none_o of_o the_o church_n acknowledge_v they_o at_o first_o before_o they_o be_v erect_v so_o 2._o inst._n no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o condemn_v the_o monothelite_n the_o nestorian_n the_o eutychian_o the_o audian_o the_o luciferian_o the_o quartodecimani_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n answ._n 1._o part_v of_o the_o church_n condemn_v they_o and_o part_n never_o hear_v of_o they_o and_o before_o they_o rise_v none_o of_o the_o church_n condemn_v they_o so_o another_o instance_n be_v no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o administer_v the_o eucharist_n only_o in_o one_o kind_n without_o the_o cup_n and_o which_o use_v public_a prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o which_o forbid_v the_o read_v the_o scripture_n translate_v without_o special_a licence_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n answ._n 1._o only_o a_o corrupt_a part_n now_o do_v these_o the_o most_o discover_v it_o and_o none_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o in_o many_o generation_n do_v there_o need_v any_o other_o answer_n to_o such_o palpable_a sophism_n his_o argument_n plain_o shall_v run_v thus_o no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o now_o ow_v the_o traitorous_a usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o of_o lateran_n and_o part_n of_o who_o religion_n be_v for_o exterminate_v or_o burn_v all_o that_o will_v not_o renounce_v all_o belief_n of_o humane_a sense_n in_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o for_o cast_v out_o prince_n that_o execute_v not_o this_o and_o absolve_a subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o they_o and_o which_o have_v corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n worship_n and_o government_n of_o christ_n ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n answ._n a_o disease_a part_n of_o the_o church_n only_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o now_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v far_o from_o it_o heretofore_o but_o pag._n 83._o he_o tell_v i_o that_o he_o mean_v neither_o one_o present_a assembly_n nor_o yet_o one_o as_o unite_v in_o one_o visible_a humane_a head_n but_o abstract_v from_o that_o also_o be_v it_o but_o true_o and_o proper_o one_o 6._o whencesoever_o the_o unity_n be_v draw_v it_o be_v all_o alike_a to_o the_o solution_n of_o the_o argument_n answ._n then_o sure_o our_o business_n be_v in_o a_o hopeful_a way_n if_o not_o as_o good_a as_o end_v remember_v this_o and_o fly_v not_o from_o it_o our_o unity_n be_v in_o christ_n our_o head_n one_o king_n make_v we_o one_o kingdom_n all_o christian_n be_v one_o body_n of_o christ._n yea_o moreover_o we_o be_v one_o in_o all_o the_o seven_o point_n of_o unity_n require_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n eph._n 4._o viz._n we_o have_v 1._o one_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n 2._o one_o spirit_n 3._o one_o hope_n of_o our_o call_v viz._n eternal_a glory_n 4_o one_o lord_n without_o a_o vice-christ_n 5._o one_o faith_n summary_o in_o the_o creed_n and_o integral_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 6._o one_o baptism_n or_o solemnize_v baptismal_a covenant_n 7._o one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o who_o be_v above_o all_o and_o through_o all_o and_o in_o we_o all_o yea_o as_o to_o the_o integral_n though_o our_o grace_n have_v various_a degree_n we_o all_o receive_v the_o inspire_a prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n authority_n and_o doctrine_n and_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n that_o be_v send_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o call_v by_o the_o way_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v though_o we_o receive_v not_o a_o usurper_n that_o make_v himself_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o title_n while_o he_o govern_v not_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o it_o nor_o any_o according_a to_o god_n law_n and_o who_o be_v oft_o obtrude_v by_o whore_n and_o murder_n and_o be_v a_o wicked_a slave_n of_o satan_n so_o judge_v by_o his_o own_o general_n council_n we_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v among_o we_o different_a opinion_n but_o neither_o for_o kind_a or_o number_n comparable_a to_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o papal_a sectary_n among_o themselves_o not_o for_o kind_a such_o as_o about_o murder_n adultery_n perjury_n lie_v false-witness_n yea_o about_o the_o love_n of_o god_n itself_o be_v by_o the_o jansenist_n charge_v on_o the_o jesuit_n and_o prove_v out_o of_o their_o express_a word_n nor_o such_o as_o mr._n clarkson_n have_v collect_v from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o their_o most_o famous_a doctor_n of_o all_o party_n nor_o such_o about_o king-killing_a dissolve_v subject_n oath_n etc._n etc._n as_o h._n fowlis_n have_v gather_v from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o your_o great_a doctor_n and_o for_o number_n all_o the_o sect_n in_o the_o world_n of_o christian_n set_v together_o have_v not_o half_a the_o controversy_n and_o contentious_a write_n against_o each_o other_o as_o your_o schoolman_n and_o other_o writer_n of_o your_o church_n have_v for_o our_o part_n we_o look_v not_o that_o our_o union_n shall_v be_v perfect_a till_o our_o wisdom_n and_o holiness_n and_o patience_n and_o we_o ourselves_o be_v perfect_a they_o that_o know_v but_o in_o part_n will_v err_v in_o part_n and_o differ_v in_o part_n we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n but_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o difference_n of_o administration_n but_o the_o same_o lord_n and_o diversity_n of_o operation_n but_o the_o same_o god_n who_o work_v all_o in_o all_o for_o as_o the_o bedy_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o that_o one_o body_n be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n so_o also_o be_v christ_n for_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n and_o have_v be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n thus_o be_v we_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o member_n in_o particular_a and_o god_n have_v set_v some_o in_o this_o body_n the_o church_n first_o apostle_n not_o first_o a_o vice-christ_n second_o prophet_n three_o teacher_n but_o no_o universal_a vicar-head_n all_o these_o be_v member_n and_o shall_v so_o live_v in_o love_n that_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n in_o the_o body_n but_o pag._n 84._o the_o man_n be_v not_o satisfy_v though_o i_o name_v they_o what_o i_o mean_v by_o these_o church_n unite_v in_o one_o christ._n 7._o answ._n how_o shall_v i_o make_v a_o man_n know_v that_o be_v unwilling_a or_o how_o but_o by_o name_v they_o by_o their_o country_n and_o profession_n i_o mean_v all_z the_o christian_n of_o
necessary_a to_o make_v we_o member_n answ._n as_o the_o union_n of_o king_n and_o subject_n make_v one_o kingdom_n so_o the_o union_n of_o christ_n and_o christian_n make_v one_o church_n and_o we_o call_v none_o christian_n that_o profess_v not_o true_a faith_n and_o charity_n and_o their_o seed_n but_o he_o say_v the_o question_n be_v how_o a_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_a can_v be_v a_o true_a christian._n answ._n ambiguous_a word_n be_v the_o game_n of_o deceiver_n and_o to_o open_v the_o ambiguity_n mar_v their_o cause_n the_o word_n heretic_n i_o have_v tell_v you_o signify_v either_o one_o that_o deny_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o christianity_n or_o one_o that_o only_o deny_v a_o integral_a part_n the_o former_a be_v no_o christian_n the_o latter_a may_v §_o 13._o but_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o no_o heretic_n be_v a_o christian_n or_o have_v true_a faith_n viz._n whoever_o have_v true_a faith_n believe_v the_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o that_o be_v certain_a but_o so_o do_v no_o heretic_n that_o be_v very_o false_a of_o both_o sort_n of_o heretic_n 1._o you_o call_v the_o luciferian_o the_o novatian_o etc._n etc._n heretic_n and_o who_o can_v see_v reason_n to_o doubt_v but_o they_o may_v believe_v that_o all_o that_o god_n say_v be_v true_a 2._o overdo_v be_v undo_v as_o you_o be_v the_o great_a cause_n of_o schism_n by_o overdo_v as_o against_o schism_n so_o you_o will_v justify_v almost_o all_o the_o heretic_n in_o the_o world_n by_o your_o blind_a over_n as_o against_o heretic_n and_o while_o you_o will_v make_v most_o or_o much_o of_o christ_n church_n to_o be_v heretic_n you_o will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o there_o be_v none_o all_o that_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n believe_v that_o he_o be_v verax_n no_o liar_n but_o true_a all_o that_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v no_o liar_n but_o true_a of_o his_o word_n believe_v all_o to_o be_v true_a which_o they_o judge_v to_o be_v his_o word_n but_o say_v w._n ay_o no_o heretic_n believe_v any_o thing_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v that_o be_v because_o god_n that_o reveal_v it_o be_v true_a and_o so_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v true_a and_o that_o any_o thing_n be_v true_a because_o he_o reveal_v it_o be_v no_o heretic_n and_o who_o know_v other_o man_n heart_n better_a you_o or_o they_o you_o take_v i_o its_o like_a for_o a_o heretic_n i_o say_v that_o i_o believe_v that_o god_n can_v lie_v and_o i_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o god_n the_o ●…evealer_n be_v true_a you_o say_v then_o i_o be_o no_o heretic_n if_o a_o arrian_n can_v but_o true_o say_v that_o he_o believe_v all_o god_n word_n to_o be_v true_a but_o he_o take_v not_o christ_n consubstantial_a eternal_a deity_n to_o be_v god_n word_n you_o will_v justify_v he_o to_o be_v no_o heretic_n and_o yet_o the_o poor_a iconoclast_n the_o waldenses_n the_o berengarian_o can_v find_v no_o place_n in_o this_o man_n church_n when_o yet_o he_o thus_o acquit_v almost_o all_o heretic_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n nothing_o but_o humorous_a singularity_n can_v pretend_v any_o probable_a reason_n why_o a_o arrian_n a_o nestorian_a a_o eutychian_a a_o monothelite_n yea_o a_o mahometan_a or_o other_o infidel_n may_v not_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v no_o liar_n but_o all_o that_o be_v indeed_o his_o word_n be_v true_a §_o 14._o but_o he_o will_v not_o be_v unreasonable_a without_o reason_n his_o argument_n be_v whosoever_o believe_v the_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o must_v believe_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v as_o sufficient_o propound_v to_o he_o to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n as_o be_v the_o article_n which_o he_o believe_v protest_v to_o and_o believe_v nothing_o as_o reveal_v which_o be_v as_o sufficient_o declare_v to_o he_o to_o be_v erroneous_a and_o not_o reveal_v etc._n etc._n but_o every_o heretic_n do_v otherwise_o if_o he_o believe_v some_o and_o refuse_v other_o equal_o propound_v it_o be_v not_o for_o divine_a authority_n answ._n if_o you_o believe_v this_o reason_n yourself_o you_o deserve_v little_a belief_n from_o other_o 1._o the_o word_n sufficient_o propound_v will_v never_o sufficient_o be_v expound_v by_o you_o nor_o ever_o be_v like_a to_o be_v sometime_o by_o sufficient_a as_o in_o the_o dominican_n controversy_n of_o sufficient_a grace_n be_v mean_v that_o which_o quo_fw-la posito_fw-la res_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la quo_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la and_o so_o take_v as_o necessarium_fw-la or_o possible_a for_o the_o minimum_fw-la tale_n it_o have_v no_o degree_n but_o usual_o we_o take_v sufficient_a in_o such_o a_o latitude_n as_o that_o thing_n may_v be_v in_o many_o degree_n one_o more_o sufficient_a than_o another_o that_o be_v more_o apt_a and_o powerful_a to_o produce_v the_o effect_n and_o for_o the_o first_o remember_v that_o if_o you_o judge_v so_o merciful_o of_o heretic_n as_o that_o no_o one_o be_v such_o that_o have_v not_o a_o proposal_n in_o the_o very_a first_o sense_n sufficient_a you_o can_v call_v no_o arrian_n nor_o photinian_n or_o gnostick_n a_o heretic_n till_o you_o know_v that_o the_o proposal_n be_v to_o he_o sufficient_a and_o how_o much_o less_o can_v you_o call_v the_o nestorian_n or_o eutychian_o or_o the_o abassine_n syrian_n armenian_n etc._n etc._n heretic_n when_o you_o know_v they_o not_o and_o know_v not_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o their_o proposal_n and_o to_o know_v that_o a_o proposal_n be_v sufficient_a to_o nestorius_n eutyches_n or_o dioscorus_n do_v not_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v such_o sufficient_a proposal_n to_o all_o other_o that_o go_v under_o such_o name_n either_o then_o or_o now_o who_o know_v not_o that_o a_o unlearned_a man_n have_v need_v of_o clear_a and_o oft_o teach_v than_o the_o learned_a and_o one_o that_o by_o education_n be_v prepossess_v with_o contrary_a conception_n have_v need_v of_o more_o than_o the_o unprejudiced_a and_o one_o that_o be_v corrupt_v by_o sensual_a lust_n have_v need_v of_o more_o than_o the_o temperate_a and_o what_o man_n be_v well_o able_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o measure_n of_o sufficiency_n as_o to_o other_o then_o much_o less_o to_o whole_a nation_n who_o we_o know_v not_o 2._o but_o as_o to_o your_o minor_n which_o by_o the_o word_n as_o sufficient_o show_v that_o you_o take_v sufficiency_n as_o it_o have_v degree_n here_o you_o seem_v plain_o to_o absolve_v all_o the_o heretic_n in_o the_o world_n e._n g._n as_o if_o a_o monothelite_n be_v no_o heretic_n unless_o it_o be_v as_o sufficient_o in_o degree_n reveal_v that_o christ_n have_v two_o will_n as_o it_o be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n and_o rise_v again_o or_o as_o if_o a_o arrian_n be_v no_o heretic_n unless_o it_o be_v as_o sufficient_o reveal_v that_o christ_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n as_o it_o be_v that_o he_o die_v 3._o and_o the_o supposition_n in_o your_o minor_n be_v notorious_o false_a that_o all_o heretic_n have_v as_o sufficient_a a_o proposal_n of_o all_o they_o deny_v as_o of_o that_o which_o they_o believe_v for_o if_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n reveal_v be_v not_o equal_o plain_a and_o intelligible_a than_o the_o proposal_n be_v not_o equal_o sufficient_a but_o &c_n &c_n can_v any_o man_n not_o blind_v by_o faction_n believe_v that_o god_n have_v no_o more_o plain_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n die_v rose_n and_o ascend_v than_o that_o he_o have_v two_o distinct_a will_n or_o that_o he_o have_v but_o one_o person_n or_o that_o his_o mother_n be_v to_o be_v call_v the_o parent_n of_o god_n and_o one_o that_o do_v beget_v and_o bring_v forth_o god_n and_o that_o god_n die_v yea_o or_o that_o christ_n be_v god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n and_o yet_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o only_o from_o the_o same_o substance_n but_o the_o same_o substance_n though_o these_o be_v equal_o true_a they_o be_v not_o equal_o clear_a and_o evident_a do_v the_o quartodecimani_n the_o luciferian_o the_o jovinians_n deny_v truth_n as_o sufficient_o propose_v as_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o a_o christ_n if_o you_o say_v that_o though_o they_o be_v not_o equal_o propose_v in_o scripture_n yet_o they_o be_v by_o council_n or_o tradition_n i_o answer_v 1._o be_v they_o no_o point_n of_o faith_n nor_o the_o denial_n heresy_n for_o 300_o year_n before_o the_o first_o general_n council_n 2._o when_o they_o of_o constance_n and_o basil_n be_v for_o the_o supremacy_n of_o council_n as_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o they_o of_o lateran_n and_o florence_n against_o they_o when_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n decree_v the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o
so_o than_o you_o have_v say_v nothing_o if_o not_o you_o take_v a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v indeed_o the_o church_n representative_a ●…nd_v then_o how_o many_o of_o your_o pope_n essential_a part_n of_o your_o church_n have_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o depose_v as_o heretic_n by_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o your_o church_n now_o be_v but_o the_o successor_n of_o e._n g._n eugenius_n the_o four_o so_o reject_v show_v we_o when_o ever_o the_o greek_n do_v so_o by_o our_o church_n or_o we_o §_o 17._o i_o tell_v he_o the_o greek_a church_n claim_v but_o the_o primacy_n or_o supremacy_n in_o the_o empire_n and_o not_o the_o government_n of_o all_o the_o world_n at_o this_o he_o first_o wonder_v and_o then_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o disprove_v it_o 1._o because_o else_o gregory_n the_o first_o have_v ill_o reprehend_v john_n of_o constant._n for_o claim_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n 2._o because_o jeremy_n say_v 1._o he_o be_v vice_n christi_n 2._o and_o persuade_v lucius_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n with_o they_o answ._n 1._o it_o be_v the_o arrogancy_n of_o the_o title_n that_o gregory_n reprehend_v as_o sound_v like_o a_o real_a universal_a claim_n and_o the_o reality_n of_o a_o universal_a claim_n in_o the_o empire_n i_o prove_v before_o that_o the_o greek_n know_v that_o constant._n have_v no_o title_n jure_fw-la divine_a by_o the_o can._n 28_o of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o notoriety_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o therefore_o they_o can_v not_o pretend_v it_o to_o be_v over_o all_o the_o world_n where_o the_o empire_n have_v no_o power_n and_o what_o need_v there_o more_o proof_n than_o that_o there_o be_v no_o evidence_n bring_v by_o you_o or_o any_o that_o ever_o they_o give_v law_n to_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o that_o ever_o they_o call_v council_n out_o of_o it_o or_o that_o ever_o they_o set_v up_o and_o put_v down_o bishop_n in_o it_o indeed_o they_o have_v excommunicate_v roman_a pope_n but_o that_o be_v within_o the_o empire_n and_o so_o do_v alexandria_n or_o if_o since_o as_o they_o do_v still_o it_o be_v not_o as_o their_o governor_n but_o as_o any_o church_n may_v renounce_v communion_n with_o heretic_n or_o person_n uncapable_a of_o their_o communion_n 2._o and_o as_o for_o jeremy_n 1._o will_v not_o cyril_n as_o much_o prove_v the_o contrary_a 2._o be_v one_o man_n the_o greek_a church_n 3._o do_v every_o apostle_n or_o do_v every_o minister_n of_o christ_n proclaim_v himself_o universal_a head_n of_o the_o church_n when_o he_o say_v as_o 2_o cor._n 5._o 19_o we_o beseech_v you_o vice_n christi_n in_o christ_n stead_n to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v preacher_n in_o christ_n stead_n to_o our_o particular_a flock_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o usurp_v christ_n proper_a office_n and_o be_v in_o his_o stead_n universal_a governor_n of_o the_o world_n 4._o and_o may_v not_o one_o of_o we_o or_o any_o christian_a persuade_v a_o man_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o jeremias_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o rule_v further_o than_o the_o empire_n now_o the_o empire_n be_v mahome●…an_n and_o subject_n voluntary_a and_o free_a what_o wonder_n be_v it_o we_o undertake_v not_o to_o justify_v he_o from_o all_o ambition_n §_o 18._o i_o tell_v he_o out_o of_o his_o jeremias_n and_o his_o protonotary_n john_n zygomolas_n that_o they_o confess_v agreement_n with_o we_o in_o continuis_fw-la &_o causam_fw-la fidei_fw-la praecipuè_fw-la continentibus_fw-la articulis_fw-la and_o that_o quae_fw-la videntur_fw-la consensum_fw-la impedire_fw-la talia_fw-la sunt_fw-la si_fw-la velit_fw-la quis_fw-la ut_fw-la facilè_fw-la ●…a_fw-la corrig●…re_fw-la possit_fw-la he_o tell_v i_o that_o 1._o yet_o they_o consent_v with_o they_o in_o all_o save_o the_o pope_n authority_n answ._n 1._o how_o far_o that_o be_v from_o truth_n thom._n a_o jesu_n and_o other_o of_o your_o own_o will_v tell_v you_o 2._o and_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v the_o ratio_fw-la formalis_fw-la of_o popery_n 2._o he_o say_v that_o jer._n claim_v as_o supreme_a authority_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o the_o pope_n do_v answ._n 1._o i_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o till_o i_o see_v the_o proof_n i_o find_v he_o lay_v all_o his_o claim_n from_o council_n and_o therefore_o may_v possible_o claim_v power_n over_o those_o church_n that_o be_v in_o the_o empire_n when_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n give_v that_o power_n but_o i_o find_v no_o more_o and_o if_o he_o do_v they_o and_o we_o may_v yet_o be_v christian_n 3._o he_o say_v any_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n may_v write_v the_o like_a to_o the_o lutheran_n but_o zygomalas_n suppose_v they_o of_o two_o church_n till_o unite_v answ._n he_o suppose_v they_o not_o in_o all_o thing_n of_o the_o same_o mind_n nor_o of_o the_o same_o particular_a church_n but_o he_o that_o say_v that_o we_o agree_v in_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o differ_v but_o in_o lesser_a thing_n of_o easy_a reconciliation_n either_o suppose_v both_o party_n to_o be_v christian_n and_o of_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n or_o else_o that_o no_o man_n be_v christian_n that_o have_v any_o difference_n that_o be_v no_o two_o explicit_a believer_n perhaps_o in_o the_o world_n §_o 19_o i_o tell_v he_o 1._o the_o patriarch_n be_v not_o the_o greek_a church_n nor_o 2._o their_o lesser_a error_n prove_v we_o of_o two_o religion_n or_o church_n he_o reply_v 1._o but_o he_o know_v the_o extent_n of_o his_o own_o jurisdiction_n answ._n 1._o so_o do_v not_o all_o ambitious_a man_n if_o he_o do_v than_o the_o papist_n be_v all_o deceive_v for_o he_o pretend_v say_v you_o a_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o church_n but_o the_o question_n between_o he_o and_o the_o protestant_n w●…_n not_o about_o his_o jurisdiction_n 2._o he_o say_v that_o if_o the_o error_n be_v tolerable_a we_o be_v schismatic_n in_o separate_v from_o they_o and_o shall_v rather_o have_v suffer_v answ._n to_o separate_v from_o any_o sin_n and_o error_n by_o not_o consent_v or_o commit_v it_o no_o christian_a deny_v to_o be_v our_o duty_n and_o his_o supposition_n that_o we_o separate_v from_o the_o catholic_n or_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v but_o his_o continue_a fiction_n we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o therefore_o not_o obey_v they_o be_v no_o separation_n and_o not_o sin_v with_o they_o be_v no_o separation_n we_o own_v they_o as_o christian_n and_o we_o renounce_v the_o sin_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o hate_v our_o own_o more_o than_o any_o other_o so_o far_o as_o we_o know_v they_o §_o 20._o to_o his_o say_n that_o it_o be_v against_o christianity_n to_o hold_v condemn_v heretic_n to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v 1._o that_o i_o detest_v that_o condemnation_n when_o even_o non_fw-la judices_fw-la condemn_v whole_a nation_n without_o hear_v one_o man_n much-less_a all_o speak_v for_o themselves_o or_o any_o just_a witness_n that_o ever_o hear_v they_o defend_v a_o heresy_n his_o answer_n be_v that_o i_o mistake_v the_o way_n of_o their_o church_n condemnation_n they_o do_v but_o say_v whoever_o hold_v such_o error_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v or_o we_o excommunicate_v such_o as_o hold_v they_o etc._n etc._n answ._n there_o be_v some_o hope_n leave_v then_o for_o the_o nation_n that_o be_v no_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n unless_o non-subjection_n be_v the_o heresy_n but_o have_v the_o pope_n go_v no_o further_o than_o this_o have_v he_o not_o put_v whole_a nation_n under_o interdict_v but_o he_o say_v those_o that_o profess_v their_o heresy_n or_o that_o communicate_v with_o they_o be_v esteem_v heretic_n and_o those_o that_o profess_v to_o disbelieve_v their_o heresy_n and_o yet_o live_v in_o communion_n with_o they_o and_o subjection_n to_o they_o be_v schismatic_n answ._n 1._o here_o be_v new_a confound_a doctrine_n indeed_o if_o their_o canon_n only_o condemn_v indefinite_o those_o that_o hold_v a_o heresy_n e._n g._n nestorianism_n take_v it_o to_o be_v unfit_a to_o say_v god_n die_v or_o such_o god_n be_v bear_v must_v all_o be_v take_v for_o heretic_n that_o communicate_v with_o any_o of_o these_o before_o the_o person_n guilty_a be_v convict_v and_o judge_v must_v every_o private_a man_n be_v the_o judge_n of_o hi●…_n neighbour_n every_o servant_n of_o his_o master_n every_o woman_n of_o her_o husband_n every_o subject_n of_o the_o king_n and_o be_v burn_v for_o a_o heretic_n for_o communicate_v with_o one_o that_o be_v never_o accuse_v or_o condemn_v we_o live_v then_o with_o one_o another_o more_o dangerous_o than_o man_n converse_v in_o the_o time_n of_o pestilence_n nay_o what_o if_o the_o priest_n himself_o admit_v such_o to_o the_o communion_n must_v the_o poor_a people_n be_v burn_v if_o they_o communicate_v with_o they_o in_o the_o parish_n church_n
france_n and_o germany_n to_o which_o i_o say_v 1._o that_o none_o but_o rome_n much_o meddle_v in_o the_o empire_n after_o their_o conquest_n nor_o rome_n much_o in_o comparison_n of_o alexandria_n constantinople_n and_o antioch_n 2._o i_o easy_o confess_v that_o those_o church_n within_o the_o empire_n have_v be_v settle_v in_o their_o several_a power_n by_o the_o council_n at_o nice_a and_o const._n do_v plead_v the_o same_o canonical_a settlement_n to_o keep_v their_o possession_n when_o they_o be_v conquer_v and_o that_o e._n g._n rome_n under_o theodorick_n and_o other_o arrian_n be_v willing_a to_o keep_v their_o relation_n to_o the_o orthodox_n church_n of_o the_o empire_n for_o their_o strength_n and_o neighbour_n that_o be_v under_o heathen_n or_o arrian_n be_v glad_a of_o a_o little_a countenance_n from_o council_n of_o great_a bishop_n in_o the_o empire_n as_o basil_n and_o the_o easterne_n under_o valens_n be_v from_o the_o west_n without_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n §_o 33._o pag._n 116._o after_o some_o trifle_a quibble_n he_o answer_v my_o charge_n that_o their_o church_n be_v not_o one_o but_o two_o have_v at_o time_n two_o head_n the_o pope_n to_o some_o and_o a_o council_n to_o other_o to_o this_o he_o say_v 1._o that_o this_o belong_v to_o they_o that_o take_v council_n to_o be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o not_o to_o he_o who_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n answ._n it_o be_v to_o your_o party_n in_o general_a i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o w._n i._o be_v two_o church_n but_o that_o those_o call_a papist_n be_v so_o 2._o he_o say_v that_o they_o also_o can_v answer_v i_o with_o a_o wet_a finger_n for_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o the_o council_n and_o not_o exclude_v answ._n such_o wet-fingerd_a answer_n serve_v to_o deceive_v the_o ignorant_a the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o the_o pope_n natural_a person_n but_o of_o his_o political_n two_o summa_fw-la potestates_fw-la make_v two_o polity_n the_o pope_n in_o a_o general_n council_n be_v not_o the_o summae_fw-la potestas_fw-la if_o a_o council_n be_v above_o he_o and_o may_v judge_v and_o depose_v he_o to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o a_o council_n that_o have_v the_o sovereignty_n be_v not_o to_o have_v the_o sovereignty_n do_v you_o not_o know_v this_o §_o 34._o i_o urge_v he_o as_o his_o proper_a work_n to_o answer_v these_o question_n whether_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o christ_n day_n on_o earth_n and_o therein_o 1._o whether_o the_o papacy_n that_o be_v their_o universal_a papal_a government_n over_o all_o the_o earth_n have_v so_o long_o continue_v 2._o whether_o all_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v still_o submit_v to_o it_o 3._o whether_o those_o that_o do_v submit_v to_o it_o take_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o man_n salvation_n or_o only_o to_o the_o more_o orderly_a and_o better_a be_v but_o he_o will_v not_o be_v drive_v to_o touch_v at_o any_o of_o these_o or_o prove_v the_o perpetual_a visibility_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d over_o my_o last_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d over_o many_o of_o his_o im●…_n 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d that_o i_o refer_v he_o but_o to_o the_o p●…sing_n of_o the_o history_n which_o 〈◊〉_d co●…th_v with_o the_o general_n answer_v which_o i_o have_v before_o give_v and_o he_o will_v find_v 1._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v but_o a_o national_a primate_n 2._o and_o that_o by_o humane_a institution_n 3._o and_o under_o a_o general_n council_n 4._o strive_v upon_o every_o advantage_n to_o be_v great_a 5._o under_o the_o power_n of_o prince_n 6._o and_o when_o he_o lose_v his_o power_n over_o all_o the_o other_o four_o patriarch_n the_o west_n fall_v from_o the_o empire_n he_o seek_v to_o bring_v the_o western_a prince_n under_o he_o and_o claim_v a_o government_n over_o all_o the_o world_n the_o three_o part_n a_o defence_n of_o my_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n §_o 1._o i_o begin_v with_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o term_n but_o this_o disputer_n say_v that_o this_o be_v of_o no_o concern_v to_o his_o argument_n nor_o much_o to_o my_o answer_n answ._n it_o please_v not_o those_o that_o be_v all_o darkness_n such_o explication_n as_o you_o give_v i_o be_v indeed_o of_o little_a use._n 1._o he_o say_v i_o make_v believer_n and_o true_a christian_n synonyma_n whereas_o one_o may_v be_v a_o believer_n as_o a_o unbaptised_a catechumene_fw-la but_o be_v not_o a_o christian_n till_o baptize_v answ._n as_o a_o pope_n once_o tell_v one_o how_o little_a wit_n in_o a_o place_n of_o power_n will_v serve_v to_o govern_v the_o world_n so_o i_o see_v by_o this_o man_n how_o little_a reason_n will_v serve_v to_o set_v up_o a_o jesuite_n for_o a_o ●…nanswerable_a disputant_n among_o the_o ignorant_a the_o word_n christian_n as_o well_o as_o believer_n signify_v 1._o a_o heart-consenter_n to_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n 2._o or_o a_o professor_n of_o that_o consent_n and_o 1._o regular_o by_o baptism_n 2._o or_o without_o it_o when_o it_o can_v be_v ●…ad_a 1._o as_o soon_o as_o a_o man_n believe_v and_o consent_v he_o be_v a_o christian_n before_o god_n 2._o as_o soon_o as_o he_o solemn_o profess_v it_o he_o be_v a_o incomplete_a christian_a before_o man_n 3._o as_o soon_o as_o he_o profess_v it_o in_o baptism_n he_o be_v orderly_a and_o regular_o a_o christian_n before_o the_o church_n even_o as_o two_o secret_o ma●…rying_v be_v marry_v before_o god_n and_o when_o they_o publish_v their_o mutual_a consent_n and_o covenant_n as_o suppose_v it_o be_v where_o a_o priest_n be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v they_o be_v irregular_o marry_v before_o man_n but_o solemn_a matrimony_n make_v it_o a_o legal_a marriage_n in_o fore_n and_o this_o distinction_n hold_v of_o the_o word_n beleiver_n as_o well_o as_o of_o christian_n a_o beleiver_n a_o disciple_n and_o a_o christian_a be_v synonyma_n before_o popery_n be_v bear_v §_o 2._o next_o he_o say_v that_o my_o word_n subject_a to_o christ_n their_o head_n be_v equivocal_a because_o subject_n may_v signify_v but_o inferior_a and_o head_n but_o a_o principal_a member_n answ._n what_o be_v not_o equivocal_a to_o a_o jesuit_n 1._o do_v i_o not_o put_v this_o first_o the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 2._o when_o i_o say_v it_o be_v the_o whole_a company_n of_o believer_n subject_a to_o christ_n their_o head_n be_v not_o the_o word_n significative_a enough_o of_o a_o govern_v head_n and_o do_v i_o not_o add_v the_o constitutive_a part_n be_v christ_n and_o christian_n as_o the_o pars_fw-la imperans_fw-la &_o subdita_fw-la be_v there_o more_o notify_v word_n in_o use_n if_o there_o be_v tell'them_fw-mi i_o if_o you_o can_v or_o be_v not_o this_o a_o cavil_n that_o have_v more_o of_o will_n and_o interest_n than_o of_o conscience_n §_o 3._o i_o say_v protestant_n be_v christian_n protest_v against_o and_o disallow_v popery_n to_o this_o he_o cavil_v 1._o that_o the_o name_n have_v another_o original_n 2._o that_o the_o greek_n arrian_n antitrinitarian_n socinian_n hussites_n anabaptist_n familist_n millenaries_n quaker_n be_v not_o protestant_n answ._n 1._o do_v i_o undertake_v to_o tell_v you_o the_o first_o rise_v of_o the_o name_n or_o only_o to_o tell_v who_o i_o mean_v in_o my_o dispute_n if_o i_o have_v the_o german_a protestation_n immediate_o against_o a_o particular_a edict_n be_v principal_o and_o final_o against_o popery_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n be_v the_o name_n continue_v but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o name_n but_o the_o church_n and_o religion_n that_o i_o dispute_v of_o you_o know_v that_o the_o name_v reform_v catholic_n christians_o please_v we_o better_o than_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n be_v not_o christian_n after_o they_o be_v first_o call_v so_o at_o antioch_n of_o the_o same_o religion_n as_o before_o when_o they_o be_v call_v but_o disciple_n and_o believer_n yea_o and_o nazarens_fw-la by_o their_o adversary_n 2._o who_o will_v have_v think_v that_o you_o have_v take_v arrian_n antitrinitarian_n socinian_n or_o any_o that_o deny_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o christianity_n for_o true_a christian_n do_v you_o not_o here_o oft_o profess_v the_o contrary_a and_o those_o that_o be_v no_o christian_n be_v not_o in_o my_o definition_n those_o that_o be_v christian_n as_o greek_n millenaries_n and_o hussites_n and_o most_o anabaptist_n with_o we_o be_v protestant_n but_o not_o mere_a protestant_n they_o have_v somewh●…t_v more_o and_o worse_o which_o give_v they_o another_o name_n but_o if_o christian_n protest_v against_o popery_n they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o church_n universal_a as_o we_o be_v §_o 4._o when_o i_o call_v popery_n
which_o they_o may_v short_o expect_v by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o some_o i_o have_v attempt_v to_o make_v this_o return_n to_o this_o one_o reply_n which_o be_v all_o that_o ever_o they_o publish_v against_o i_o that_o i_o know_v of_o and_o because_o true_a order_n require_v first_o that_o we_o understand_v each_o other_o term_n i_o must_v begin_v with_o that_o though_o it_o be_v the_o last_o thing_n in_o his_o book_n in_o which_o you_o will_v see_v what_o a_o sandy_a fabric_n it_o be_v which_o be_v adorn_v by_o they_o with_o the_o great_a epithet_n of_o apostolical_a ancient_a universal_a infallible_a and_o how_o little_a they_o know_v or_o can_v make_v other_o know_v what_o it_o be_v of_o which_o they_o do_v dispute_v or_o what_o that_o church_n be_v to_o which_o so_o many_o hundred_o thousand_o christian_n call_v by_o they_o heretic_n have_v be_v sacrifice_v by_o sword_n and_o flame_n in_o the_o second_o part_n i_o defend_v the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n of_o against_o his_o vain_a objection_n and_o in_o the_o three_o part_n i_o defend_v those_o additional_a argument_n by_o which_o i_o prove_v it_o in_o all_o which_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o impartial_a understand_a reader_n may_v see_v that_o their_o terrestrial_a universal_a monarchy_n and_o their_o condemnation_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v contrary_a to_o sense_n reason_n tradition_n consent_n antiquity_n and_o scripture_n and_o that_o their_o kingdom_n stand_v but_o on_o three_o leg_n ignorance_n and_o deceit_n worldly_a interest_n and_o the_o sword_n and_o violence_n and_o when_o these_o and_o especial_o the_o sword_n of_o prince_n do_v cease_v to_o uphold_v it_o it_o will_v present_o die_v and_o come_v to_o nothing_o for_o though_o melchior_n canus_n say_v that_o the_o roman_a privilege_n as_o he_o call_v they_o have_v stand_v though_o the_o great_a number_n of_o bishop_n and_o church_n and_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n have_v be_v against_o they_o yet_o be_v it_o uphold_v against_o all_o these_o by_o no_o better_a mean_n than_o those_o aforesaid_a the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n and_o bishop_n viz._n of_o east_n and_o south_n be_v against_o they_o and_o all_o the_o other_o four_o patriarchates_n renounce_v they_o as_o they_o do_v to_o this_o day_n they_o lay_v the_o fast_a hold_n of_o the_o west_n and_o by_o master_v italy_n flatter_v and_o advance_v france_n promise_v kingdom_n and_o empire_n to_o their_o adherent_n threaten_v the_o deposition_n of_o other_o divide_v germany_n and_o all_o europe_n that_o many_o may_v need_v the_o pope_n and_o few_o be_v able_a to_o resist_v he_o and_o by_o keep_v man_n ignorant_a that_o they_o may_v be_v capable_a of_o their_o government_n by_o these_o mean_v they_o overcome_v the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n and_o make_v they_o their_o subject_n who_o subject_n they_o have_v be_v if_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o to_o satisfy_v the_o reader_n against_o popery_n but_o these_o follow_a particular_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o humane_a nature_n to_o receive_v it_o 1._o the_o natural_a incapacity_n of_o one_o man_n to_o be_v a_o church-monarch_n ☞_o any_o more_o than_o to_o be_v a_o civil_a monarch_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n 2._o that_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o the_o pope_n succee_v not_o peter_n as_o a_o apostle_n but_o as_o a_o universal_a pastor_n but_o peter_n never_o have_v any_o high_a office_n than_o to_o be_v the_o first_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 28._o god_n have_v set_v in_o the_o church_n first_o apoctles_o not_o first_o a_o vice-christ_n 3._o that_o they_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o fide_fw-la that_o the_o pope_n be_v peter_n successor_n 4._o that_o none_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n have_v successor_n as_o in_o superior_a seat_n nor_o do_v any_o patriarch_n much_o less_o twelve_o claim_v power_n as_o successor_n of_o any_o apostle_n save_v antioch_n and_o rome_n and_o antioch_n as_o from_o the_o same_o st._n peter_n but_o no_o universal_a sovereignty_n 5._o that_o whoever_o will_v turn_v papist_n must_v confess_v that_o he_o be_v a_o ungodly_a hypocrite_n before_o and_o that_o all_o profess_a christian_n be_v so_o save_o the_o papist_n that_o know_v their_o doctrine_n 6._o that_o he_o must_v renounce_v the_o sense_n of_o all_o sound_a man_n and_o believe_v they_o all_o deceive_v by_o miracle_n the_o content_n of_o the_o first_o part._n chap._n 1._o sect._n 1_o his_o explication_n of_o the_o term_n catholic_n church_n 1._o he_o exclude_v all_o from_o christ_n universal_a church_n and_o christianity_n that_o be_v no_o member_n of_o christian_a congregation_n yet_o mean_v not_o only_a church_n but_o family_n ship_n or_o any_o civil_a assembly_n damn_v all_o solitary_a christian_n or_o that_o be_v alone_o among_o infidel_n 2._o he_o make_v subjection_n to_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n necessary_a and_o yet_o say_v the_o votum_fw-la of_o it_o alone_o will_v serve_v sect._n 2._o he_o unchurch_v parish-church_n he_o make_v dependence_n on_o lawful_a pastor_n in_o general_a necessary_a but_o not_o on_o the_o pope_n particular_o sect._n 3_o what_o faith_n must_v be_v in_o a_o church-member_n his_o implicit_a discourse_n of_o implicit_a faith_n which_o indeed_o be_v no_o faith_n of_o any_o particular_a article_n several_a sense_n of_o implicit_a faith_n open_v his_o general_a faith_n prove_v no_o particular_a faith_n in_o what_o sense_n we_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v sect._n 8._o his_o instance_n explain_v sect._n 9_o when_o virtual_a repentance_n suffice_v sect._n 10._o his_o avoid_v to_o answer_v sect._n 11._o the_o papist_n church_n invisible_a sect._n 12._o his_o strange_a doctrine_n of_o general_n sect._n 13._o what_o christianity_n be_v be_v no_o point_n of_o faith_n with_o they_o sect._n 14._o the_o invisibility_n of_o their_o church_n further_o prove_v sect._n 15._o their_o contradiction_n about_o receive_v all_o faith_n on_o the_o church_n authority_n sect._n 16._o 17._o the_o true_a method_n of_o believe_v sect._n 18._o humane_a faith_n be_v join_v with_o divine_a sect._n 20._o what_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n be_v sect._n 21._o papist_n utter_o disagree_v what_o a_o christian_a be_v and_o confound_v and_o their_o church_n invisible_a sect._n 22._o note_n of_o great_a moment_n hereupon_o the_o baptise_v of_o man_n that_o believe_v only_o that_o there_o be_v a_o reward_v god_n be_v a_o new_a false_a baptism_n sect._n 23._o q_o 3_o who_o be_v the_o pastor_n who_o rejection_n unchurch_v man_n of_o parish_n priest_n q._n 4._o how_o shall_v all_o the_o world_n be_v sure_a that_o pope_n and_o priest_n have_v a_o just_a election_n or_o ordination_n sect._n 24_o 25_o 26_o 27_o 28._o chap._n 2._o their_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n heresy_n whether_o heresy_n be_v in_o will_n or_o understanding_n sect._n 1_o heretic_n by_o their_o definition_n be_v unknown_a sect._n 2._o the_o power_n of_o judge_v of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o proposal_n make_v we_o the_o clergy_n master_n of_o all_o man_n life_n sect._n 3_o he_o make_v none_o heretic_n that_o deny_v not_o god_n veracity_n sect._n 4._o and_o all_o heretic_n to_o deny_v it_o yea_o all_o that_o receive_v not_o every_o truth_n safficient_o propose_v yet_o unsaith_o all_o and_o say_v that_o not_o culpable_a neglect_n of_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o all_o but_o contradiction_n to_o the_o know_a proposal_n of_o lawful_a superior_n make_v a_o heretic_n sect._n 7._o q._n what_o sufficient_a proposal_n be_v sect._n 8._o 9_o he_o say_v that_o the_o true_a church-governor_n may_v be_v know_v without_o revelation_n sect._n 10._o sufficiency_n further_o examine_v sect._n 11._o he_o hereticate_v themselves_o or_o none_o sect._n 12._o whether_o every_o misunderstanding_n of_o a_o intelligible_a text_n of_o scripture_n be_v heresy_n sect._n 13._o what_o heresy_n be_v indeed_o sect._n 14._o chap._n 3._o their_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n pope_n sect._n 1_o pope_n judge_v herteick_n by_o many_o council_n where_o christ_n institution_n of_o the_o papacy_n must_v be_v find_v sect._n 2._o who_o ad_fw-la esse_fw-la must_v elect_v the_o pope_n sect._n 3._o w._n j._n can_v and_o dare_v not_o tell_v consecration_n deny_v to_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o pope_n sect._n 6._o neither_o papal_a nor_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n he_o say_v depend_v on_o papal_a or_o episcopal_a ordination_n sect._n 7._o so_o they_o may_v be_v layman_n what_o such_o jurisdiction_n be_v sect._n 8._o what_o notice_n or_o proof_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o subject_n chap._n 4._o their_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n bishop_n the_o pope_n be_v not_o of_o god_n ordain_v in_o their_o way_n sect._n 1._o 2._o their_o bishop_n of_o calcedon_n testimony_n put_v off_o sect._n 3_o they_o make_v all_o man_n that_o will_v or_o no_o man_n to_o be_v bishop_n his_o great_a confusion_n and_o contradiction_n say_v we_o want_v not_o episcopal_a consecration_n but_o election_n
confirmation_n vocation_n mission_n jurisdiction_n all_o these_o explain_v sect._n 8._o he_o make_v the_o chapter_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n day_n to_o have_v have_v the_o power_n of_o choose_v all_o the_o parish_n priest_n pope_n no_o pope_n for_o want_v of_o common_a consent_n sect._n 9_o who_o must_v choose_v a_o monarch_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n sect._n 10._o their_o succession_n interrupt_v sect._n 11._o 12._o be_v it_o essential_a to_o a_o bishop_n to_o have_v many_o congregation_n parish_n or_o presbyter_n by_o affirm_v this_o he_o nullifi_v all_o the_o first_o bishop_n who_o be_v bishop_n before_o they_o make_v presbyter_n under_o they_o and_o so_o deny_v all_o succession_n by_o deny_v the_o root_n chap._n 5._o what_o they_o mean_v by_o tradition_n sect._n 1_o he_o think_v the_o tradition_n of_o all_o the_o world_n may_v be_v know_v by_o every_o christian_a as_o easy_o as_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n sect._n 2._o tradition_n against_o popery_n sect._n 4._o the_o protestant_n abassine_n armenian_n greek_n etc._n etc._n be_v of_o one_o church_n sect._n 4._o the_o contradiction_n of_o w._n j._n the_o unity_n of_o all_o other_o christian_n as_o such_o great_a than_o the_o unity_n of_o papist_n as_o papist_n sect._n 5._o chap._n 6._o what_o they_o mean_v by_o a_o general_n council_n his_o definition_n of_o a_o general_a council_n be_v no_o definition_n sect._n 2._o council_n of_o old_a not_o call_v by_o the_o pope_n sect._n 3_o his_o confusion_n and_o contradiction_n sect._n 4._o general_a council_n be_v but_o of_o the_o empire_n prove_v sect._n 5._o the_o impossibility_n and_o utter_a unlawfulness_n of_o a_o true_a universal_a council_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n prove_v sect._n 6._o how_o many_o make_v a_o universal_a council_n sect._n 7._o they_o make_v presbyter_n uncapable_a of_o vote_a in_o council_n and_o yet_o the_o high_a ancient_a part_n of_o the_o papacy_n viz._n to_o preside_v in_o council_n be_v oft_o depute_a to_o presbyter_n sect._n 8._o the_o council_n of_o basil_n that_o have_v presbyter_n reject_v by_o they_o for_o other_o reason_n sect_n 9_o chap._n 7._o what_o they_o mean_v by_o schism_n papist_n acquit_v all_o from_o schism_n who_o separate_v not_o from_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n sect._n 1_o we_o separate_v not_o from_o the_o greek_n arminian_n etc._n etc._n sect._n 3_o he_o absurd_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v our_o mission_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o they_o if_o we_o have_v communion_n with_o they_o sect._n 4._o we_o have_v the_o same_o faith_n with_o they_o sect._n 5._o how_o far_o we_o separate_v from_o rome_n sect._n 6._o they_o be_v not_o our_o lawful_a pastor_n sect._n 7._o of_o hear_v the_o pharisee_n sect._n 8._o we_o infer_v not_o rebellion_n against_o authority_n by_o our_o reject_v traitorous_a usurper_n sect._n 9_o whether_o the_o first_o reformer_n know_o and_o wilful_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n on_o earth_n sect._n 10._o he_o pretend_v that_o the_o church_n unity_n be_v perfect_a and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o schism_n in_o it_o but_o only_o from_o it_o when_o their_o own_o sect_n have_v a_o schism_n by_o divers_a pope_n for_o forty_o year_n whether_o all_o that_o follow_v the_o wrong_a pope_n those_o forty_o year_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o damn_a sect._n 11._o his_o definition_n of_o schism_n agree_v best_a to_o the_o papist_n who_o separate_v from_o all_o the_o church_n save_o their_o own_o sect_n sect._n 12._o a_o admonition_n to_o other_o sect._n 13._o my_o reason_n unanswered_a by_o which_o i_o prove_v 1._o that_o we_o interrupt_v not_o our_o church_n succession_n when_o we_o break_v off_o from_o rome_n 2._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v change_v in_o essential_o part_n ii_o the_o preface_n all_o be_v not_o well_o say_v or_o do_v by_o every_o bishop_n or_o council_n of_o old_a sect._n 1_o 2_o 3._o of_o the_o considerableness_n of_o the_o extra-imperial_a church_n of_o old_a sect._n 4_o 5._o the_o plea_n of_o peter_n supremacy_n and_o their_o succession_n overthrow_v there_o never_o be_v twelve_o patriarchal_a seat_n as_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n no_o one_o patriarch_n claim_v to_o be_v a_o apostle_n successor_n but_o rome_n and_o antioch_n and_o antioch_n never_o claim_v supremacy_n on_o that_o account_n sect._n 6._o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n about_o the_o church_n perpetual_a visibility_n sect._n 7._o papist_n make_v christian_n no_o christian_n for_o not_o obey_v the_o pope_n and_o no_o christian_n to_o be_v christian_n if_o they_o will_v be_v his_o subject_n sect._n 8_o 9_o what_o i_o maintain_v sect._n 10._o a_o discourse_n republish_v prove_v that_o christ_n church_n have_v no_o universal_a head_n but_o himself_o pope_n nor_o council_n chap._n 1._o the_o confutation_n of_o w._n i_n reply_n twelve_o instance_n confu●…ing_v the_o wild_a fundamental_a principle_n of_o w._n j._n that_o whatever_n have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n institution_n be_v essential_a to_o it_o sect._n 4._o by_o this_o he_o unchurch_v rome_n sect._n 5._o he_o say_v that_o every_o such_o thing_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n but_o not_o to_o every_o member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o to_o such_o as_o have_v sufficient_a proposal_n confute_v sect_n 6._o by_o this_o their_o church_n can_v be_v know_v or_o the_o faith_n of_o a_o few_o may_v make_v other_o christian_n sect._n 7._o his_o assertion_n further_o confute_v sect._n 8._o his_o logical_a proof_n shame_v that_o every_o accident_n be_v separable_a and_o therefore_o all_o that_o christ_n institute_v to_o continue_v be_v no_o accident_n sect._n 9_o whether_o the_o belief_n of_o every_o institution_n for_o continuance_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n sect._n 10._o they_o unchurch_n themselves_o sect._n 11._o he_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o christian_a nation_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n express_o but_o implicit_o in_o subject_v themselves_o to_o they_o that_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n five_o notable_a consequent_n of_o this_o the_o true_a method_n of_o believe_v sect._n 12._o the_o instance_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o iberian_o and_o indian_n vindicate_v he_o suppose_v that_o every_o reveal_v truth_n be_v teach_v they_o by_o lay-person_n sect._n 13._o the_o instance_n of_o peter_n not_o preach_v his_o own_o supremacy_n act._n 2._o vindicate_v sect._n 14._o the_o indian_n convert_v by_o the_o english_a and_o dutch_a be_v teach_v the_o true_a faith_n sect._n 15._o and_o so_o be_v the_o abassine_n sect._n 16._o his_o doctrine_n against_o christ_n visible_a reign_n contain_v many_o gross_a error_n common_o call_v heresy_n and_o by_o make_v the_o christian_a world_n a_o monster_n if_o it_o have_v not_o one_o papal_a head_n he_o make_v the_o humane_a world_n a_o monster_n because_o it_o have_v not_o one_o humane_a king_n sect._n 17._o chap._n 2._o our_o church_n visibility_n confess_v they_o to_o be_v by_o they_o prove_v how_o far_o any_o protestant_n grant_v the_o power_n of_o patriarch_n and_o the_o pope_n as_o patriarch_n sect._n 1_o he_o bid_v i_o but_o prove_v that_o any_o church_n which_o now_o deny_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n have_v be_v always_o visible_a and_o he_o be_v satisfy_v whether_o that_o church_n always_o deny_v it_o or_o not_o sect._n 2._o note_n hereon_o whether_o they_o shall_v exclaim_v against_o christ_n as_o a_o invisible_a head_n who_o make_v he_o as_o visible_a in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o every_o receiver_n as_o a_o king_n be_v in_o his_o clothes_n sect._n 3_o whether_o a_o ministry_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o universal_a church_n sect._n 4._o his_o argument_n against_o our_o christianity_n re-examined_a and_o confute_v by_o divers_a instance_n of_o such_o fallacy_n sect._n 5._o he_o require_v a_o instance_n of_o any_o church-unity_n though_o without_o a_o humane_a head_n which_o end_v the_o controversy_n sect._n 6._o more_o difference_n and_o great_a among_o papist_n than_o among_o all_o the_o other_o church_n sect._n 7._o he_o have_v no_o evasion_n but_o say_v that_o these_o church_n be_v not_o christian_n because_o they_o depend_v not_o on_o the_o pope_n from_o which_o he_o before_o say_v that_o he_o abstract_v sect._n 8._o he_o deny_v we_o with_o the_o abassine_n greek_n armenian_n etc._n etc._n to_o have_v be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o one_o church_n both_o full_o prove_v sect._n 9_o the_o charge_n of_o nestorianism_n and_o eutichianism_n on_o many_o church_n examine_v sect._n 10._o his_o shameful_a call_n for_o the_o name_n of_o sect_n and_o require_v proof_n of_o the_o negative_a that_o they_o be_v not_o such_o sect._n 11._o chap._n 3._o more_o of_o our_o unity_n of_o the_o speech_n of_o celestine_n legate_n at_o ephesus_n sect._n 1_o 2._o his_o say_n and_o unsay_n sect._n 3_o his_o
instance_n of_o goth_n dane_n swede_n examine_v sect._n 4_o 5._o whether_o extra_fw-la imperial_a church_n be_v under_o the_o pope_n sect._n 5._o in_o what_o case_n some_o be_v and_o which_o his_o pretence_n to_o the_o indian_n armenian_n and_o persian_n examine_v sect._n 6._o the_o tradition_n of_o these_o church_n be_v against_o popery_n sect_n 7._o his_o notorious_a fiction_n about_o the_o subjection_n of_o the_o indian_n armenian_n and_o abassine_n to_o rome_n sect._n 9_o 10._o of_o pisanus_n arabic_a nicene_n canon_n sect._n 11._o he_o intend_v to_o write_v a_o tractate_n to_o prove_v that_o extraneous_a bishop_n be_v at_o the_o council_n but_o that_o put-off_a go_v for_o a_o answer_n sect._n 12._o he_o confess_v that_o the_o very_a gallicane_n and_o spanish_a liturgy_n mention_v not_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n no_o more_o than_o the_o ethiopic_a sect._n 13._o when_o constantine_n entreat_v the_o king_n of_o persia_n for_o the_o church_n there_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o command_v there_o sect._n 14._o whether_o before_o gregory_n mission_n the_o british_a church_n be_v ever_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n or_o heretical_a sect._n 15._o reynerius_n word_n vindicate_v viz._n the_o church_n of_o the_o armenian_n ethiopian_n and_o indian_n and_o the_o rest_n which_o the_o apostle_n convert_v be_v not_o under_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n sect._n 16._o the_o 28._o can._n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n vindicate_v which_o declare_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v but_o the_o first_o patriarch_n in_o the_o empire_n by_o humane_a right_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o imperial_a city_n sect._n 17._o 18_o 19_o 20._o his_o brave_a attempt_n to_o prove_v that_o extra-imperial_a bishop_n be_v summon_v to_o the_o council_n at_o nice_a of_o john_n persidis_fw-la armenian_n gothia_n at_o ephes._n 1_o thebamnon_n bishop_n of_o coptus_n sect._n 21._o 22._o his_o other_o citation_n confute_v sect._n 23._o of_o eusebius_n his_o circular_a letter_n sect._n 24._o chap._n 4._o the_o emperor_n and_o not_o the_o pope_n call_v the_o old_a council_n sect._n 1_o myraeus_n his_o notitia_fw-la episcopat_fw-la against_o he_o sect._n 2._o of_o the_o authority_n over_o the_o barbarous_a give_v con._n calce_v c._n 28._o proof_n that_o the_o papal_a power_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v but_o jure_fw-la humano_fw-la sect._n 5._o he_o be_v over_o but_o one_o empire_n sect._n 6._o no_o council_n but_o of_o one_o empire_n prosper_v testimony_n examine_v &_o caput_fw-la mundi_fw-la expound_v sect._n 7._o pope_n leo_n word_n examine_v sect._n 8_o 9_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n show_v the_o pope_n rule_v not_o the_o world_n sect._n 10._o more_o of_o ethiopia_n and_o pisanus_n canon_n sect._n 11._o chap._n 5._o the_o case_n re●…eated_v the_o uselessness_n of_o his_o testimony_n therein_o chap._n 6._o the_o vanity_n of_o his_o proof_n that_o council_n be_v call_v general_n as_o to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o not_o only_o to_o the_o empire_n from_o the_o word_n totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la from_o the_o end_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o rest_n sect._n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o his_o question_n answer_v what_o heretic_n be_v christian_n sect._n 8_o 9_o 10_o 11._o he_o say_v that_o no_o heretic_n believe_v for_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v and_o so_o acquit_v all_o that_o do_v but_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v true_a which_o be_v all_o that_o believe_v indeed_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n sect._n 12._o of_o sufficiency_n of_o proposal_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v not_o equal_a he_o absolve_v heretic_n and_o make_v heretic_n of_o the_o papist_n sect._n 13_o 14_o 15._o whether_o the_o papist_n and_o protestant_n be_v one_o church_n whether_o the_o pope_n and_o christ_n be_v two_o head_n whether_o a_o king_n that_o say_v god_n have_v make_v i_o the_o vicegod_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n set_v not_o up_o a_o policy_n destinct_n from_o god_n sect._n 16._o one_o call_v a_o papist_n may_v be_v a_o christian_n and_o another_o not_o sect._n 17._o 18._o chap._n 7._o whether_o we_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n as_o the_o old_a heretic_n do_v sect._n 1_o whether_o we_o separate_v from_o other_o church_n as_o we_o do_v from_o the_o papal_a sect._n 2._o arrian_n separate_v from_o the_o church_n as_o christian_a sect._n 3_o why_o they-call_a u_fw-mi schismatic_n sect._n 4._o 5._o papist_n agree_v not_o whether_o heretic_n be_v in_o the_o church_n sect._n 6._o what_o we_o hold_v herein_o sect._n 6._o his_o absurd_a answer_n sect._n 7._o whether_o every_o man_n deny_v christ_n veracity_n who_o receive_v not_o every_o truth_n sufficient_o propose_v sect._n 8_o 9_o he_o make_v it_o a_o grand_a novelty_n of_o i_o to_o say_v that_o there_o may_v be_v division_n in_o the_o church_n and_o not_o from_o the_o church_n because_o the_o church_n be_v a_o most_o perfect_a unity_n the_o shame_n of_o this_o charge_n sect._n 10_o 11._o his_o charge_n of_o eutychianisme_n on_o the_o abassine_n etc._n etc._n sect._n 12._o of_o self-conceited_a hereticate_a wit_n sect._n 12._o whether_o the_o abassine_n confess_v themselves_o eutichianes_n sect._n 14._o of_o the_o greek_a church_n reject_v we_o sect._n 16._o the_o greek_a church_n claim_v not_o sovereignty_n over_o all_o the_o world_n but_o in_o the_o empire_n sect._n 17_o 18_o 19_o whether_o every_o child_n subject_n or_o neighbour_n must_v judge_n heretic_n and_o avoid_v they_o unsentence_v sect._n 20._o his_o false_a answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o own_o writer_n that_o free_a the_o greek_n from_o heresy_n sect._n 21._o the_o witness_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n that_o the_o greek_n mean_v orthodox_o sect._n 23._o nilus_n testimony_n vindicate_v sect._n 24_o our_o unity_n with_o greek_n and_o other_o sect._n 25._o a_o notable_a passage_n of_o meletius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o constantinople_n for_o the_o sole_a headship_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o pope_n usurpation_n novelty_n and_o forsake_v tradition_n which_o with_o cyril_n testimony_n w._n j._n pass_v over_o sect._n 26._o the_o answer_n to_o w._n j_n second_o part_n of_o his_o reply_n sect._n 1_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o all_o his_o citation_n pretermit_v in_o term_n sect._n 2._o because_o i_o cite_v a_o patriarch_n and_o council_n excommunicate_v a_o pope_n by_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n countenance_n he_o say_v i_o plead_v for_o rebellion_n sect._n 4._o his_o instance_n of_o the_o pope_n extraneous_a power_n confute_v sect._n 5._o his_o particular_a proof_n before_o promise_v in_o a_o special_a tract_n examine_v 1._o his_o error_n of_o theophilus_n gothiae_n sect._n 6._o 2._o of_o domnus_n bosphori_n his_o gross_a error_n sect._n 7._o 3._o of_o joh._n persidis_fw-la sect._n 8._o 4._o of_o bishop_n of_o scythia_n sect._n 9_o 5._o of_o etherius_fw-la anchialensis_n for_o sebastianus_n sect._n 10._o 6._o of_o phaebamnon_n copti_n sect._n 11._o 7._o of_o theodulus_n esulae_n so_o false_o call_v sect._n 12._o 8._o of_o theodorus_n gadarorum_n sect._n 13._o 9_o of_o antipater_n bostrorum_fw-la sect._n 14._o 10._o of_o olympius_n schythopoleos_n sect._n 15._o 11._o of_o eusebius_n gentis_fw-la saracenorum_n sect._n 16._o 12._o constantinus_n bostrorum_fw-la sect._n 17._o 13._o one_o pro_fw-la glaco_fw-it gerassae_fw-la all_o show_v his_o gross_a ignorance_n of_o the_o bishopric_n of_o the_o empire_n sect._n 19_o the_o nestorian_n epistle_n at_o the_o council_n ephes._n to_o callimores_n rex_fw-la expound_v sect._n 20_o 21._o remark_n upon_o passage_n in_o the_o first_o ephisine_n council_n sect._n 22._o remark_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n sect._n 23._o of_o the_o title_n caput_fw-la mundi_fw-la mater_fw-la omnium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la primatus_fw-la apostolicus_n etc._n etc._n give_v to_o antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n sect._n 24._o binnius_n confession_n that_o at_o conc._n const._n 1._o the_o pope_n preside_v not_o per_fw-la se_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la legatos_fw-la sect._n 25._o his_o assertion_n that_o the_o council_n pretend_v to_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o church_n through_o all_o the_o world_n examine_v sect._n 26._o the_o vanity_n of_o his_o first_o proof_n sect._n 27_o 28._o of_o his_o second_o and_o three_o more_o note_n of_o the_o council_n calce_v sect._n 29._o his_o four_o instance_n confute_v sect._n 30._o his_o five_o confute_v sect._n 31._o his_o six_o confute_v sect._n 32._o his_o last_o instance_n vain_a sect._n 33._o he_o can_v not_o disprove_v the_o roman_a church_n from_o be_v real_o two_o church_n name_v one_o as_o have_v two_o supreme_a head_n sect._n 34._o i_o can_v not_o entreat_v he_o by_o any_o provocation_n to_o prove_v the_o continue_a visibility_n of_o the_o church_n as_o papal_n part_n iii_o a_o defence_n of_o my_o argument_n for_o our_o continue_a visibility_n sect._n 1_o whether_o all_o believer_n be_v christian_n sect._n 2._o the_o vanity_n of_o his_o next_o cavil_v against_o my_o definition_n sect._n 3_o my_o definition_n of_o protestant_n vindicate_v sect._n 4._o one_o may_v have_v communion_n with_o faulty_a church_n sect._n 5._o
we_o may_v not_o know_v what_o and_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o while_o they_o have_v a_o explicit_a belief_n of_o some_o article_n they_o can_v never_o be_v think_v to_o be_v without_o faith_n 5._o answ._n either_o he_o mean_v that_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o the_o question_n which_o must_v notify_v we_o from_o heretic_n and_o from_o other_o without_o and_o which_o the_o church_n must_v unite_v in_o or_o some_o other_o faith_n if_o any_o other_o do_v he_o not_o wilful_o juggle_v and_o fly_v from_o answer_v when_o he_o pretend_v to_o answer_v if_o he_o mean_v the_o faith_n in_o question_n than_o mahometan_n and_o heathen_n be_v of_o their_o faith_n and_o member_n of_o their_o church_n yea_o and_o all_o that_o they_o call_v heretic_n and_o anathematise_v themselves_o yea_o and_o the_o devil_n that_o believe_v and_o tremble_v but_o one_o will_v think_v that_o pag._n 11_o he_o describe_v the_o necessary_a implicit_a faith_n when_o he_o say_v our_o ordinary_a sense_n be_v so_o to_o believe_v that_o point_n that_o we_o have_v no_o distinct_a or_o express_a knowledge_n 6._o of_o it_o but_o only_o a_o confuse_a understanding_n because_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o confuso_fw-la under_o this_o proposition_n i_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v or_o i_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v deliver_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n answ._n 1._o but_o i_o must_v again_o repeat_v that_o here_o the_o word_n confuse_a be_v use_v but_o to_o confound_v this_o be_v no_o actual_a belief_n of_o any_o particular_a under_o that_o proposition_n when_o a_o thing_n be_v actual_o know_v in_o itself_o but_o only_o by_o a_o general_n knowledge_n or_o not_o d●…stinct_n this_o be_v true_o a_o impersect_n knowledge_n it_o be_v to_o know_v somewhat_o of_o that_o thing_n though_o not_o its_o form_n or_o individuation_n if_o i_o see_v something_o which_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o man_n or_o a_o tree_n a_o steeple_n or_o a_o rock_n i_o very_o know_v somewhat_o of_o that_o thing_n itself_o but_o not_o the_o form_n of_o it_o if_o i_o see_v a_o book_n open_a at_o two-yard_n distance_n i_o see_v the_o letter_n distinct_o but_o not_o formal_o for_o i_o know_v not_o what_o any_o one_o of_o they_o be_v if_o i_o see_v a_o clod_n of_o earth_n or_o a_o river_n i_o see_v much_o of_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o water_n but_o i_o discern_v not_o the_o sand_n or_o the_o drop_n as_o distinct_a part_n here_o something_o be_v know_v though_o the_o special_a or_o numerical_a difference_n much_o more_o some_o accident_n be_v unknown_a but_o in_o know_v w._n i_n general_a proposition_n only_o i_o know_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o the_o particular_n as_o shall_v yet_o be_v further_o manifest_v 2._o and_o mark_v what_o his_o general_a proposition_n be_v which_o he_o say_v be_v the_o object_n of_o their_o 7._o implicit_a say_v viz._n i_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v or_o all_o that_o be_v deliver_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n either_o he_o real_o mean_v that_o this_o be_v the_o implicit_a faith_n by_o which_o christian_n be_v notifi●…d_v and_o which_o unit_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o distinguish_v they_o from_o those_o without_o or_o he_o do_v not_o if_o he_o do_v not_o what_o do_v he_o but_o deceive_v his_o r●…ader_n if_o he_o do_v then_o as_o i_o say_v all_o christian_n heretic_n most_o mahometan_n and_o heathen_n believe_v the_o first_o proposition_n viz._n that_o all_o be_v true_a that_o god_n reveal_v and_o protestant_n and_o papist_n and_o most_o other_o sort_n of_o christian_n agree_v in_o the_o second_o the_o scripture-truth_n here_o then_o be_v a_o justification_n of_o our_o faith_n so_o far_o but_o do_v you_o think_v that_o he_o mean_v as_o he_o seem_v to_o mean_v do_v they_o not_o hold_v it_o also_o necessary_a that_o man_n must_v take_v their_o church_n to_o be_v the_o declarer_fw-la of_o this_o scripture-truth_n and_o also_o that_o tradition_n not_o write_v in_o the_o bible_n be_v believe_v must_v not_o both_o these_o make_v up_o their_o implicit_a faith_n if_o our_o general_a faith_n and_o they_o be_v the_o same_o what_o make_v they_o accuse_v we_o herein_o as_o they_o do_v but_o now_o pag._n 11._o he_o proceed_v to_o assault_v i_o with_o such_o reason_n as_o this_o no_o man_n know_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o wit_n with_o a_o actual_a understanding_n of_o every_o particular_a 8._o ergo_fw-la say_v i_o no_o man_n believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v now_o i_o proceed_v if_o no_o man_n believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v than_o you_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v then_o further_o whoever_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v be_v no_o good_a christian_n nor_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n but_o you_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v ergo_fw-la you_o be_v no_o good_a christian_n nor_o in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n see_v you_o not_o how_o fair_a a_o thread_n you_o have_v spin_v or_o will_v you_o say_v that_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v be_v a_o good_a christian_a if_o you_o will_v you_o may_v but_o no_o good_a christian_n will_v believe_v you_o answ._n the_o man_n seem_v in_o good_a sadness_n in_o all_o this_o childish_a play_n and_o must_v rome_n be_v thus_o uphold_v and_o must_v poor_a man_n faith_n and_o conscience_n be_v thus_o lay_v upon_o a_o game_n at_o cheat_a word_n no_o wonder_n that_o this_o hector_n will_v have_v nothing_o say_v in_o dispute_n but_o syllogism_n etc._n etc._n few_o lad_n and_o woman_n will_v unmask_v his_o pitiful_a deceit_n whether_o the_o great_a disputer_n see_v their_o vanity_n himself_o i_o know_v not_o but_o man_n at_o age_n that_o can_v speak_v and_o try_v sense_n will_v see_v that_o all_o this_o cant_n be_v but_o the_o sporting-equivocation_n of_o one_o syllable_n all_o this_o all_z be_v either_o a_o term_n of_o a_o mere_a general_a proposition_n e._n g._n all_o god_n word_n be_v true_a here_o i_o believe_v what_o be_v predicate_v of_o this_o general_a word_n all_o and_o take_v this_o for_o a_o true_a proposition_n all_o god_n word_n be_v true_a or_o it_o signify_v the_o very_a thing_n species_n or_o part_n as_o in_o themselves_o know_v and_o so_o if_o the_o very_a thing_n species_n or_o part_n general_o express_v by_o the_o word_n all_o be_v not_o themselves_o know_v as_o such_o thing_n species_n or_o part_n it_o be_v no_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o they_o at_o all_o to_o know_v that_o truth_n of_o the_o say_v general_a proposition_n and_o do_v not_o every_o novice_n in_o logic_n know_v this_o the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o belief_n as_o of_o knowledge_n he_o be_v no_o good_a christian_n who_o believe_v not_o that_o all_o divine_a revelation_n be_v true_a which_o heretic_n and_o heathen_n believe_v but_o neither_o i_o nor_o any_o christian_a know_v to_o he_o or_o i_o know_v or_o believe_v all_o the_o particular_a verity_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o he_o believe_v not_o one_o of_o they_o beside_o that_o proposition_n itself_o which_o be_v find_v among_o the_o rest_n who_o believe_v but_o that_o general_a but_o yet_o he_o will_v justify_v his_o vanity_n by_o more_o instance_n pag._n 12_o he_o say_v when_o you_o profess_v in_o 9_o t●…e_a creed_n that_o god_n be_v the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a i_o demand_v do_v you_o believe_v as_o you_o profess_v if_o you_o do_v than_o you_o may_v believe_v with_o a_o actual_a belief_n that_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o many_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a whereof_o you_o have_v no_o actual_a understanding_n or_o which_o be_v whole_o unknown_a particular_o or_o distinct_o to_o you_o or_o by_o any_o other_o knowledge_n than_o as_o confuse_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n all._n ans._n 1._o what_o be_v all_o this_o but_o to_o say_v that_o i_o believe_v this_o proposition_n all_o thing_n of_o which_o many_o be_v unknown_a to_o ●…e_v be_v create_v by_o god_n this_o proposition_n i_o know_v and_o believe_v but_o the_o thing_n themselves_o as_o such_o i_o no_o further_o believe_v than_o i_o know_v if_o i_o know_v not_o that_o they_o be_v i_o believe_v not_o that_o they_o be_v if_o i_o know_v not_o what_o they_o be_v i_o believe_v not_o what_o they_o be_v that_o be_v if_o i_o have_v not_o a_o intellectual_a conception_n that_o they_o be_v and_o what_o they_o be_v for_o believe_v be_v indeed_o but_o a_o know_v by_o the_o medium_n of_o a_o testimony_n or_o revelation_n and_o the_o veracity_n of_o the_o revealer_n i_o believe_v that_o god_n ma●…_n all_o that_o be_v about_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o i_o neither_o know_v nor_o actual_o believe_v any_o one_o thing_n species_n or_o individual_a or_o
to_o another_o or_o the_o king_n may_v pardon_v all_o crime_n by_o a_o act_n of_o oblivion_n without_o know_v what_o they_o be_v but_o if_o the_o question_n be_v about_o a_o intellectual_a act_n who_o object_n do_v specify_v it_o intrinsical_o in_o the_o mind_n as_o whether_o the_o king_n actual_o know_v the_o particular_a crime_n which_o he_o pardon_v if_o you_o say_v that_o he_o know_v the_o particular_n actual_o in_o confuso_fw-la because_o the_o only_o know_v in_o general_a that_o some_o crime_n there_o be_v this_o be_v but_o to_o talk_v against_o all_o the_o usual_a ●…ense_n of_o mankind_n and_o to_o call_v that_o a_o actual_a know_v of_o particular_n in_o confuso_fw-la which_o other_o man_n call_v no_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o particular_n but_o only_o of_o general_n which_o in_o some_o case_n may_v be_v call_v a_o virtual_a knowledge_n of_o particular_n which_o be_v no_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o they_o and_o in_o some_o not_o but_o if_o he_o have_v hear_v some_o imperfect_a confuse_a narrative_n of_o the_o crime_n themselves_o this_o may_v be_v call_v a_o actual_a conf●…ed_a knowledge_n of_o they_o but_o mark_v reader_n what_o edification_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v from_o these_o man_n disputation_n he_o know_v very_o well_o that_o he_o and_o i_o be_v agree_v that_o all_o christian_n must_v take_v god_n veracity_n in_o his_o revelation_n 11._o for_o the_o formal_a object_n without_o which_o faith_n be_v no_o faith_n and_o so_o must_v believe_v that_o god_n can_v lie_v and_o that_o all_o be_v true_a which_o he_o assert_v and_o that_o we_o protestant_n hold_v that_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o nor_o include_v the_o knowledge_n or_o belief_n of_o any_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v reveal_v beside_o this_o one_o general_a he_o know_v that_o our_o question_n be_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o believe_v some_o particular_n as_o reveal_v by_o god_n and_o whether_o this_o faith_n do_v not_o go_v to_o essentiate_v a_o christian_a and_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o so_o then_o what_o those_o particular_n be_v which_o must_v be_v believe_v to_o constitute_v a_o true_a christian_a and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n now_o he_o dare_v not_o come_v into_o the_o light_n and_o answer_v this_o question_n but_o as_o if_o he_o be_v mock_v woman_n or_o child_n say_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v must_v be_v believe_v explicit_o or_o implicit_o we_o understand_v you_o sir_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v this_o proposition_n all_o that_o god_n reveal_v be_v true_a but_o be_v that_o enough_o then_o heathen_n idolater_n sadducees_o infidel_n mahometan_n be_v christian_n and_o member_n of_o your_o church_n but_o do_v they_o think_v so_o themselves_o if_o you_o can_v thus_o with_o a_o juggle_n make_v all_o the_o world_n christian_n the_o like_a art_n may_v make_v they_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n no_o say_v he_o there_o must_v some_o thing_n also_o be_v believe_v explicit_o but_o the_o question_n be_v what_o they_o be_v o_o there_o you_o must_v excuse_v he_o he_o dare_v not_o he_o can_v tell_v you_o what_o but_o sir_n be_v these_o some_o thing_n essential_a to_o christianity_n and_o church-membership_a or_o not_o if_o you_o say_v not_o what_o nothing_o essential_a to_o christian_a faith_n in_o particular_a be_v it_o faith_n and_o yet_o a_o belief_n of_o nothing_o in_o particular_a be_v there_o no_o material_a difference_n at_o all_o between_o a_o christian_a and_o a_o sadducee_n infidel_n mahometan_n or_o heathen_a and_o yet_o can_v protestant_n be_v save_v for_o want_v of_o the_o right_a belief_n o_o marvellous_a religion_n but_o if_o any_o particular_a belief_n be_v necessary_a can_v it_o be_v know_v what_o it_o be_v how_o then_o can_v a_o christian_n be_v know_v by_o himself_o or_o other_o from_o all_o the_o unbelieving_a world_n or_o your_o church_n from_o other_o man_n this_o be_v my_o question_n to_o you_o be_v not_o your_o church_n then_o invisible_a when_o no_o man_n can_v know_v what_o make_v a_o member_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o the_o man_n talk_v confident_o in_o his_o darkness_n as_o if_o this_o will_v serve_v instead_o of_o light_n 12._o and_o say_v i_o make_v my_o church_n visible_a though_o by_o comprehend_v in_o it_o all_o those_o who_o profess_v a_o explicit_a faith_n in_o several_a article_n which_o they_o understand_v distinct_o and_o a_o implicit_a belief_n of_o the_o rest_n whereof_o they_o have_v not_o distinct_a understanding_n by_o profess_v that_o they_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o they_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v in_o particular_a now_o so_o long_o as_o they_o persevere_v in_o this_o belief_n though_o they_o shall_v happen_v through_o culpable_a negligence_n not_o to_o arrive_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o many_o thing_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o know_v necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la yet_o they_o remain_v member_n though_o corrupt_a and_o wicked_a of_o the_o church_n whereby_o you_o see_v how_o easy_o i_o avoid_v that_o difficulty_n which_o you_o think_v i_o can_v not_o ans._n too_o easy_o against_o all_o reason_n reader_n this_o paragraph_n be_v worth_a the_o nothing_o 1._o several_a article_n must_v be_v believe_v explicit_o but_o not_o a_o word_n to_o tell_v you_o which_o or_o what_o they_o be_v or_o whether_o it_o be_v any_o whatever_o that_o will_v serve_v the_o turn_n if_o it_o be_v but_o that_o cain_n be_v the_o son_n of_o adam_n 2._o the_o implicit_a belief_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v not_o here_o say_v to_o be_v any_o implicit_a belief_n of_o the_o pope_n council_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o that_o they_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o they_o and_o be_v we_o not_o yet_o so_o far_o right_a and_o reconcile_v this_o be_v too_o kind_a to_o the_o protestant_n for_o it_o take_v in_o all_o mankind_n with_o they_o who_o confess_v a_o god_n for_o to_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n be_v to_o deny_v his_o perfection_n that_o be_v his_o godhead_n 3._o mark_v that_o even_o culpable_a ignorance_n of_o other_o thing_n unchurch_v not_o 4._o and_o yet_o all_o this_o denote_v but_o a_o corrupt_a and_o wicked_a member_n of_o their_o holy_a church_n which_o if_o such_o can_v be_v save_v 5._o and_o with_o this_o chat_n the_o man_n think_v he_o have_v do_v his_o business_n and_o doubtless_o there_o be_v some_o so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o believe_v he_o but_o all_o this_o want_v but_o two_o thing_n to_o make_v it_o just_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n one_o be_v to_o name_v those_o particular_n essential_a to_o christianity_n which_o must_v be_v believe_v the_o other_o be_v to_o distinguish_v between_o a_o sound_n and_o serious_a practical_a belief_n and_o a_o dead_a opinion_n or_o profession_n and_o to_o conclude_v that_o the_o sincere_a practical_a belief_n constitute_v invisible_a justify_v member_n and_o the_o profession_n make_v only_o visible_a one_o next_o he_o have_v another_o bout_n against_o omne_fw-la animal_n vivit_fw-la the_o question_n be_v whether_o to_o know_v this_o be_v to_o know_v that_o w._n i._n bucephalus_n a_o phoenix_n or_o a_o unicorn_n live_v i_o say_v no_o because_o 13._o it_o may_v stand_v with_o the_o ignorance_n that_o ever_o there_o be_v or_o will_v be_v such_o a_o animal_n as_o be_v call_v w._n i._o or_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n but_o he_o make_v all_o good_a on_o his_o side_n by_o talk_v of_o impossibility_n and_o suchlike_a word_n which_o be_v of_o the_o same_o use_n in_o respect_n to_o our_o argument_n that_o drum_n in_o a_o army_n be_v to_o drown_v the_o groan_n of_o die_a man_n and_o put_v courage_n into_o the_o soldier_n he_o say_v when_o philosopher_n say_v omne_fw-la animal_n vivit_fw-la they_o mean_v it_o of_o the_o essence_n or_o notion_n of_o animal_n to_o be_v a_o live_a thing_n and_o this_o be_v true_a of_o i_o and_o all_o particular_n whether_o we_o be_v in_o actual_a existence_n or_o not_o be_v not_o here_o excellent_a philosophy_n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o this_o be_v a_o true_a proposition_n omne_fw-la animal_n vivit_fw-la whether_o vv._n 1_n exist_v or_o not_o but_o be_v this_o true_a of_o vv._n i._n and_o all_o particular_n whether_o they_o exist_v or_o not_o that_o which_o exi_v not_o be_v nothing_o neither_o vv._n i._n nor_o any_o particular_a the_o sum_n be_v then_o nothing_o be_v a_o live_a thing_n or_o animal_n there_o be_v a_o vv._n i._n and_o all_o particular_n which_o be_v all_o nothing_o and_o yet_o be_v animal_n or_o live_v who_o will_v not_o turn_v papist_n and_o run_v into_o a_o nunnery_n that_o be_v but_o charm_v with_o such_o philosophy_n next_o pag_n 15._o he_o say_v that_o how_o much_o must_v be_v believe_v explicit_o be_v a_o dispute_n among_o divine_n not_o necessary_a to_o be_v determine_v here_o yet_o i_o will_v say_v something_o to_o that_o present_o 14._o ans._n i_o warrant_v you_o
nothing_o be_v necessary_a to_o you_o to_o do_v which_o you_o can_v do_v without_o come_v into_o the_o light_n it_o be_v a_o dispute_n among_o the_o papist_n divine_n what_o a_o christian_a be_v or_o what_o christianity_n be_v and_o yet_o they_o have_v a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o controversy_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v tell_v that_o protestant_n be_v heretic_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v tell_v who_o be_v member_n of_o their_o church_n though_o it_o be_v a_o dispute_n among_o divine_n but_o mark_v that_o this_o be_v not_o then_o with_o they_o de_fw-mi fide_fw-la any_o point_n of_o faith_n what_o a_o christian_a be_v or_o what_o must_v be_v believe_v for_o their_o divine_n dispute_v not_o that_o which_o they_o take_v to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la i_o tell_v he_o that_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v that_o the_o bible_n be_v true_a and_o god_n word_n and_o yet_o not_o know_v a_o word_n that_o be_v in_o it_o or_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n or_o that_o there_o be_v ever_o such_o a_o person_n 15._o he_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v moral_o impossible_a for_o either_o such_o a_o person_n believe_v the_o bible_n rash_o and_o imprudent_o and_o then_o according_a to_o all_o divine_n his_o faith_n can_v be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a or_o sufficient_a to_o constitute_v he_o a_o christian_a or_o he_o believe_v it_o prudent_o by_o prudential_a motive_n of_o credibility_n now_o that_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o he_o can_v be_v ignorant_a to_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o other_o save_o that_o though_o he_o know_v not_o by_o experience_n that_o christ_n be_v mention_v in_o the_o bible_n he_o can_v but_o know_v that_o he_o be_v profess_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n by_o those_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n who_o deliver_v the_o bible_n to_o he_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o such_o a_o faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n ans._n here_o be_v many_o thing_n worthy_a our_o consideration_n 1._o that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v a_o christian_a unless_o his_o faith_n be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a not_o only_o in_o the_o object_n but_o his_o act_n and_o sure_o no_o man_n know_v what_o other_o man_n act_n of_o faith_n be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a therefore_o no_o man_n know_v who_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o so_o their_o church_n be_v still_o invisible_a 2._o no_o man_n that_o believe_v the_o bible_n rash_o and_o imprudent_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o no_o man_n know_v whether_o another_o believe_v it_o not_o rash_o and_o imprudent_o yea_o whether_o he_o believe_v it_o at_o all_o therefore_o no_o man_n know_v who_o be_v a_o christian_n or_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 3._o no_o other_o motive_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v serve_v to_o free_v a_o man_n from_o this_o rashness_n imprudence_n and_o nullity_n of_o his_o christianity_n 1._o but_o why_o then_o have_v we_o not_o this_o general_n the_o church_n catholic_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v receive_v only_o by_o its_o authority_n before_o in_o the_o description_n of_o implicit_a or_o explicit_a faith_n 2._o be_v that_o man_n no_o christian_a in_o the_o primitive_a time_n who_o be_v convert_v by_o a_o single_a apostle_n and_o take_v not_o the_o faith_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v the_o eunuch_n convert_v by_o philip_n act._n 8._o or_o the_o jailor_n and_o lydia_n convert_v by_o paul_n act._n 16._o or_o the_o 3000_o convert_v by_o peter_n act._n 2._o receive_v faith_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o the_o indian_n when_o convert_v by_o frumentius_n and_o edesus_fw-la or_o the_o abassian_a empire_n that_o till_o late_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o pretension_n or_o do_v we_o read_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v use_v that_o argument_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o convert_v their_o hearer_n or_o that_o they_o always_o first_o tell_v they_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o such_o a_o church_n if_o by_o the_o church_n you_o mean_v any_o single_a apostle_n or_o teacher_n hold_v to_o that_o and_o we_o shall_v do_v well_o enough_o with_o you_o 3._o but_o authority_n be_v a_o ambiguous_a word_n and_o may_v deceive_v we_o maintain_v that_o a_o preserve_n and_o teach_v ministerial_a authority_n be_v usual_o needful_a to_o man_n conversion_n to_o the_o faith_n though_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v first_o believe_v by_o the_o hearer_n but_o a_o judge_a authority_n viz._n whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n a_o christ_n a_o scripture_n a_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n or_o not_o which_o determine_v by_o a_o sentence_n rather_o than_o teach_v by_o open_v that_o evidence_n which_o cause_v belief_n in_o the_o teacher_n himself_o this_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o man_n faith_n 4._o and_o what_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v hear_v a_o preacher_n open_v the_o other_o reason_n of_o christianity_n without_o talk_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o its_o authority_n and_o shall_v hereupon_o believe_v or_o shall_v believe_v by_o the_o bare_a read_n of_o a_o bible_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o this_o man_n be_v no_o christian_a nor_o shall_v be_v save_v when_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v and_o shall_v not_o perish_v and_o say_v not_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o any_o other_o motive_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o that_o must_v be_v the_o roman_n believe_v rash_o and_o impudent_o and_o shall_v perish_v 4._o but_o it_o be_v well_o worth_a the_o enquiry_n can_v we_o possible_o find_v it_o out_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o 16._o know_v the_o church_n and_o its_o profession_n and_o its_o authority_n and_o whether_o this_o be_v a_o act_n of_o necessary_a faith_n before_o any_o thing_n else_o can_v be_v believe_v or_o what_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o our_o belief_n of_o this_o church_n and_o its_o authority_n and_o what_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o this_o faith_n it_o seem_v that_o he_o suppose_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v know_v before_o that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v believe_v and_o that_o in_o know_v the_o church_n we_o must_v know_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o know_v that_o they_o be_v a_o company_n of_o man_n call_v the_o christian_a church_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o know_v what_o a_o christian_a church_n be_v and_o another_o thing_n to_o know_v that_o this_o company_n of_o man_n be_v that_o church_n must_v all_o these_o be_v know_v before_o we_o can_v believe_v or_o but_o one_o or_o two_o and_o which_o 1._o if_o the_o name_n be_v enough_o a_o man_n may_v know_v that_o a_o company_n of_o man_n be_v call_v christian_n or_o mahumetanes_n who_o know_v not_o at_o all_o what_o christianity_n or_o mahumetanism_n be_v you_o say_v that_o it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o they_o profess_v to_o trust_v in_o christ_n this_o they_o may_v do_v and_o not_o know_v who_o christ_n be_v whether_o god_n or_o man_n or_o what_o he_o have_v do_v or_o will_v do_v for_o we_o if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o must_v know_v that_o they_o profess_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n so_o they_o may_v do_v and_o yet_o not_o know_v what_o the_o word_n saviour_n signify_v or_o what_o christ_n ever_o do_v or_o will_v do_v for_o our_o salvation_n 2._o but_o if_o he_o mean_v here_o that_o every_o one_o that_o will_v believe_v god_n word_n must_v first_o know_v the_o church_n as_o define_v or_o know_v it_o in_o all_o its_o essence_n then_o 1._o how_o few_o will_v he_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v to_o be_v christian_n and_o how_o will_v he_o know_v who_o they_o be_v 2._o and_o still_o the_o question_n recur_v what_o be_v it_o that_o must_v be_v particular_o believe_v to_o essentiate_v the_o church_n for_o if_o he_o know_v not_o that_o he_o can_v know_v that_o he_o know_v what_o the_o church_n be_v 3._o and_o when_o that_o be_v do_v it_o seem_v he_o must_v know_v which_o be_v that_o church_n consider_v in_o existence_n as_o different_a from_o all_o heresy_n and_o other_o society_n but_o by_o this_o method_n our_o difficulty_n be_v multiply_v 1._o how_o shall_v i_o be_v sure_a that_o this_o church_n do_v not_o deceive_v i_o in_o say_v that_o this_o and_o not_o that_o be_v god_n word_n be_v this_o by_o a_o act_n of_o knowledge_n or_o of_o divine_a faith_n if_o of_o knowledge_n what_o evidence_n prove_v it_o if_o of_o faith_n than_o i_o must_v believe_v god_n before_o i_o can_v believe_v he_o that_o be_v i_o must_v believe_v that_o this_o be_v his_o revelation_n and_o true_a that_o the_o roman
tergiversation_n what_o sort_n of_o disputant_n shall_v blush_v will_v you_o think_v after_o all_o this_o what_o his_o answer_n be_v you_o shall_v have_v it_o in_o his_o own_o word_n and_o know_v you_o not_o that_o divine_n be_v divide_v what_o be_v the_o point_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v explicit_o necessitate_v medii_fw-la some_o and_o those_o the_o more_o ancient_a hold_v that_o the_o explicit_a belief_n of_o god_n of_o the_o whole_a trinity_n of_o christ_n his_o passion_n ☞_o resurrection_n etc._n etc._n be_v necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la other_o among_o the_o recentior_n that_o no_o more_o than_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o our_o work_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a with_o that_o necessity_n to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v now_o to_o answer_v your_o question_n what_o it_o be_v whereby_o our_o church-member_n be_v know_v i_o answer_v that_o 1._o all_o those_o who_o be_v baptize_v and_o believe_v all_o the_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n explicit_o if_o any_o such_o be_v to_o be_v find_v be_v undoubted_a member_n of_o our_o church_n 2._o all_o those_o who_o believe_v explicit_o all_o the_o artiale_n whatever_o belong_v to_o they_o in_o particular_a by_o reason_n of_o their_o respective_a office_n in_o the_o church_n 3._o those_o who_o so_o believe_v all_o thing_n necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la or_o necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la extend_v to_o all_o adulti_fw-la 4_o all_z those_o who_o believe_v in_o that_o manner_n all_o thing_n hold_v necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la according_a to_o the_o first_o opinion_n of_o the_o more_o ancient_a doctor_n 5._o it_o be_v probable_a though_o not_o altogether_o so_o certain_a as_o the_o former_a that_o such_o as_o believe_v explicit_o the_o deity_n and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o our_o work_n and_o the_o rest_n implicit_o as_o contain_v in_o confuso_fw-la in_o that_o be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n baptism_n suppose_v 〈◊〉_d now●…_n see_v all_o those_o in_o my_o four_o first_o number_n which_o comprehend_v almost_o all_o christian_n be_v certain_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n we_o have_v a_o sufficient_a certain_o of_o a_o determinate_a church_n consist_v at_o least_o of_o these_o by_o reason_n whereof_o our_o church_n have_v a_o visible_a consistency_n those_o of_o the_o five_o rank_n though_o not_o so_o certain_a not_o take_v away_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o former_a see_v you_o not_o by_o this_o discourse_n that_o we_o answer_v sufficient_o to_o your_o question_n by_o tell_v which_o be_v undoubted_a member_n ans._n reader_n how_o sad_a be_v the_o case_n of_o mankind_n when_o such_o a_o talker_n as_o this_o shall_v go_v for_o a_o champion_n and_o prevail_v with_o silly_a soul_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n against_o common_a reason_n and_o the_o notice_n of_o christianity_n mark_v here_o 1._o he_o ask_v i_o know_v you_o not_o that_o divine_n be_v divide_v yes_o and_o i_o know_v how_o lamentable_o you_o have_v divide_v the_o christian_a world_n see_v reader_n what_o be_v the_o unity_n and_o concord_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o only_o the_o laity_n but_o their_o divine_n be_v divide_v about_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o their_o church_n these_o be_v the_o man_n that_o cry_v up_o unity_n as_o a_o mark_n of_o their_o church_n and_o cry_v out_o of_o we_o as_o schismatic_n as_o if_o we_o be_v all_o crumble_v into_o dust_n by_o sect_n because_o we_o differ_v about_o some_o small_a circumstance_n of_o worship_n or_o exposition_n of_o some_o impose_v word_n of_o man_n or_o of_o some_o difficult_a point_n of_o no_o flat_a necessity_n 2._o note_v here_o also_o the_o infallibility_n of_o their_o church_n and_o what_o a_o privilege_n they_o have_v in_o have_v a_o judge_n of_o controversy_n while_o their_o doctor_n be_v divide_v on_o the_o question_n what_o a_o christian_a be_v and_o pope_n and_o council_n dare_v not_o or_o can_v or_o will_v not_o determinate_a what_o make_v a_o christian_a or_o member_n of_o their_o church_n o_o happy_a infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n 3._o note_v also_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v so_o big_a as_o that_o it_o and_o its_o circumstance_n fill_v large_a volume_n call_v the_o council_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n what_o christianity_n be_v or_o what_o must_v constitute_v a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n but_o this_o be_v leave_v at_o liberty_n to_o dispute_n 4._o note_v also_o the_o great_a partiality_n of_o the_o papist_n the_o doctor_n may_v be_v divide_v about_o the_o essence_n of_o christianity_n and_o may_v deny_v faith_n in_o christ_n to_o be_v particular_o necessary_a to_o a_o christian._n but_o if_o a_o man_n believe_v not_o that_o rome_n be_v the_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n and_o the_o pope_n the_o universal_a governourr_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n when_o the_o priest_n have_v consecrate_v he_o be_v to_o be_v exterminate_v or_o burn_v as_o a_o heretic_n and_o prince_n depose_v that_o will_v not_o execute_v it_o 5._o note_v here_o that_o here_o be_v not_o a_o word_n in_o all_o this_o of_o believe_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n either_o they_o take_v this_o to_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n or_o not_o if_o they_o do_v be_v they_o not_o juggler_n and_o ashamed_a of_o their_o faith_n when_o they_o thus_o hide_v it_o if_o not_o what_o be_v become_v of_o their_o sectarian_n church_n and_o all_o their_o accusation_n and_o condemnation_n of_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n who_o believe_v no_o such_o office_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o what_o a_o society_n be_v that_o where_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o pars_fw-la imperans_fw-la be_v not_o necessary_a to_o every_o subject_n 6._o note_v here_o whether_o the_o roman_a religion_n be_v mutable_a or_o not_o and_o whether_o constancy_n be_v a_o note_n of_o their_o verity_n when_o he_o profess_v that_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o the_o recentior_n or_o novelist_n do_v differ_v about_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o christianity_n have_v these_o recentior_n antiquity_n to_o boast_v of_o 7._o note_v also_o from_o hence_o the_o validity_n of_o their_o common_a argument_n from_o tradition_n as_o if_o all_o their_o church_n be_v now_o and_o always_o of_o one_o mind_n when_o at_o present_a they_o be_v divide_v about_o the_o essence_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o recentior_n forsake_v the_o ancient_n but_o have_v these_o ancient_n tradition_n for_o their_o opinion_n or_o not_o if_o they_o have_v how_o come_v the_o recentior_n to_o forsake_v it_o if_o not_o what_o a_o insufficient_a thing_n be_v your_o tradition_n that_o have_v not_o tell_v you_o what_o a_o christian_a or_o church-member_n be_v and_o yet_o we_o must_v take_v this_o tradition_n as_o sufficient_a to_o tell_v we_o what_o order_n and_o ceremony_n peter_n settle_v at_o rome_n 8._o i_o pray_v you_o note_v that_o even_o their_o ancient_a doctor_n opinion_n which_o be_v all_o that_o must_v keep_v his_o cause_n from_o utter_a shame_n he_o dare_v not_o describe_v in_o answer_n to_o my_o question_n but_o have_v name_v five_o word_n god_n the_o whole_a trinity_n christ_n his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n he_o crafty_o shut_v it_o up_o with_o a_o e●…_n cetera_fw-la so_o that_o if_o you_o suppose_v he_o to_o say_v that_o these_o five_o thing_n be_v all_o that_o they_o require_v he_o may_v deny_v it_o because_o he_o add_v a_o etc._n etc._n if_o you_o ask_v what_o be_v the_o ●…est_n you_o be_v where_o we_o begin_v a_o etc._n etc._n be_v all_o the_o answer_n 9_o well_o let_v we_o peruse_v his_o five_o particular_a sort_n of_o member_n distinct_o which_o make_v up_o their_o church_n and_o try_v 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o m●…ey_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d or_o whether_o the_o reader_n will_v not_o wonder_v that_o such_o train_a disputer_n have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v nor_o a_o more_o plausible_a sort_n of_o fraud_n to_o use_v 1._o his_o first_o sort_n of_o visible_a member_n be_v all_z those_o that_o be_v baptize_v and_o believe_v explicit_o all_o the_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n if_o any_o such_o be_v to_o be_v find_v ans._n be_v not_o this_o a_o modest_a parenthesis_n whether_o any_o such_o be_v to_o be_v find_v he_o seem_v uncertain_a and_o yet_o say_v these_o be_v the_o undoubted_a member_n of_o our_o church_n the_o undoubted_a member_n when_o he_o doubt_v himself_o whether_o any_o such_o be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o can_v we_o find_v the_o church_n by_o they_o then_o and_o no_o wonder_n that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v for_o note_n reader_n that_o he_o never_o tell_v you_o here_o yet_o at_o all_o what_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o church_n be_v but_o only_o that_o if_o any_o have_v it_o all_o they_o
church_n do_v notorious_o believe_v and_o practise_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o both_o kind_n the_o cup_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o celebration_n of_o public_a worship_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o the_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n by_o the_o people_n and_o other_o such_o like_a but_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o take_v you_o at_o your_o word_n nor_o call_v you_o heretic_n mere_o on_o the_o account_n assert_v by_o you_o for_o i_o know_v that_o your_o rule_n be_v false_a and_o if_o a_o man_n have_v know_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v hold_v some_o opinion_n of_o chronology_n or_o genealogy_n or_o cosmography_n as_o about_o cainan_n or_o the_o age_n of_o sem_fw-mi or_o that_o there_o be_v no_o artipode_n especial_o in_o the_o dismal_a nine_o century_n and_o if_o he_o have_v think_v that_o they_o take_v this_o point_n for_o a_o divine_a revelation_n believe_v the_o septuagint_n or_o some_o other_o mistranslation_n which_o be_v common_o receive_v before_o jeromes_n time_n this_o man_n so_o think_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o err_v in_o so_o small_a a_o point_n be_v no_o heretic_n for_o so_o think_v for_o i_o will_v know_v of_o yourself_o whether_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o their_o follower_n be_v not_o heretic_n for_o the_o septuagint_n be_v long_o take_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o be_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a long_v after_o by_o your_o universal_a roman_a church_n and_o consequent_o that_o those_o text_n be_v god_n word_n which_o yet_o afterward_o you_o alter_v many_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o alteration_n in_o the_o one_o be_v make_v by_o sixtus_n 5_o and_o clement_n 8_o all_o which_o be_v so_o many_o judgement_n that_o the_o church_n have_v err_v that_o before_o take_v the_o other_o reading_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unless_o you_o can_v make_v one_o thing_n god_n word_n to_o day_n and_o the_o contrary_a to_o morrow_n 5._o but_o by_o this_o rule_n also_o we_o be_v acquit_v from_o heresy_n if_o it_o be_v not_o notorious_a to_o we_o that_o the_o universal_a church_n believe_v and_o practise_v contrary_a to_o we_o which_o sure_o be_v notorious_a to_o very_a few_o at_o most_o and_o indeed_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o more_o because_o we_o dare_v not_o with_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o and_o in_o former_a age_n r._n b._n be_v not_o the_o bible_n a_o public_a testimony_n and_o record_n and_o be_v universal_o receive_v be_v a_o universal_a tradition_n and_o yet_o abundance_n of_o truth_n in_o it_o be_v not_o actual_o know_v or_o believe_v by_o most_o of_o your_o own_o church_n w._n j._n it_o be_v only_o a_o tradition_n that_o whatever_o be_v there_o deliver_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v no_o tradition_n that_o such_o a_o determinate_a sense_n and_o no_o other_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o every_o sentence_n 13._o contain_v in_o it_o when_o according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n the_o word_n be_v capable_a of_o many_o sense_n r._n b._n worse_o and_o worse_o still_o 1._o tradition_n tell_v we_o that_o this_o bible_n be_v god_n word_n this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v significant_a and_o intelligible_a or_o else_o it_o be_v worse_a and_o more_o defective_a than_o the_o common_a word_n of_o man_n this_o intelligible_a bible_n or_o word_n therefore_o deliver_v to_o we_o its_o own_o sense_n if_o not_o than_o council_n do_v not_o deliver_v we_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n or_o their_o own_o for_o god_n can_v speak_v as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o their_o word_n be_v no_o more_o plain_a than_o he_o yet_o a_o multitude_n of_o plain_a intelligible_a text_n be_v not_o understand_v by_o many_o of_o your_o church_n who_o you_o call_v not_o heretic_n yea_o your_o learned_a commentator_n differ_v and_o fight_v about_o their_o sense_n 2._o therefore_o when_o you_o talk_v of_o every_o sentence_n you_o do_v but_o fly_v and_o hide_v your_o fraud_n if_o your_o meaning_n be_v that_o no_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n be_v divine_a revelation_n as_o they_o be_v in_o god_n own_o word_n but_o as_o expound_v by_o your_o church_n all_o christian_a ear_n shall_v abhor_v your_o blasphemy_n if_o you_o mean_v only_o that_o there_o be_v some_o text_n so_o difficult_a as_o that_o most_o christian_n can_v understand_v they_o or_o that_o be_v capable_a of_o various_a sense_n we_o grant_v it_o but_o what_o be_v those_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v every_o man_n a_o heretic_n that_o err_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o any_o one_o plain_a text_n of_o scripture_n or_o not_o and_o it_o be_v perverse_a that_o you_o say_v of_o divers_a sense_n according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n for_o a_o text_n may_v be_v expound_v contrary_a to_o the_o plain_a word_n and_o context_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o expound_v contrary_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n if_o by_o that_o word_n you_o mean_v as_o be_v usual_a contrary_a to_o the_o harmony_n of_o christian_a necessary_a truth_n yea_o or_o contrary_a to_o any_o other_o truth_n whatever_o save_o that_o text_n itself_o and_o now_o reader_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o thy_o reason_n whether_o this_o man_n have_v give_v we_o any_o regardable_a notice_n at_o all_o what_o be_v heresy_n or_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o it_o or_o have_v not_o trifle_v and_o say_v nothing_o but_o what_o heresy_n be_v i_o will_v brief_o tell_v you_o the_o word_n signify_v election_n be_v use_v in_o the_o begin_n sometime_o for_o any_o sect_n or_o party_n divide_v from_o the_o common_a body_n of_o the_o 14._o church_n and_o christian_n be_v call_v a_o heresy_n by_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o christian_n the_o name_n signify_v any_o party_n of_o man_n that_o profess_v to_o differ_v in_o some_o necessary_a thing_n from_o the_o common_a body_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v separate_v from_o they_o as_o unmeet_a for_o their_o communion_n and_o gather_v themselves_o into_o divide_a society_n so_o that_o differ_v from_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o church_n and_o make_v different_a sect_n or_o society_n therefore_o which_o separate_v from_o and_o oppose_v the_o church_n be_v call_v heresy_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o the_o gross_a sort_n of_o schism_n and_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n schism_n than_o be_v low_a signify_v either_o the_o contentious_a make_n of_o division_n within_o a_o church_n without_o separate_n from_o it_o or_o else_o the_o break_n of_o one_o church_n into_o many_o without_o separate_v from_o other_o church_n or_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n and_o so_o long_o after_o the_o word_n heresy_n be_v sometime_o use_v for_o such_o schism_n only_o and_o hence_o lucifer_n calaritanus_n and_o the_o novatian_o and_o many_o other_o be_v call_v heretic_n and_o sometime_o use_v more_o cautelous_o in_o a_o narrow_a sense_n for_o those_o only_a that_o deny_v some_o essential_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o practice_n and_o sometime_o in_o a_o yet_o narrow_a sense_n for_o those_o only_a that_o upon_o such_o a_o denial_n of_o some_o essential_a point_n do_v gather_v into_o a_o separate_a society_n to_o maintain_v their_o error_n and_o oppugn_v the_o truth_n and_o according_a to_o these_o various_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n horesie_n and_o heretic_n we_o must_v conclude_v that_o a_o heretic_n may_v or_o may_v not_o be_v save_v and_o be_v or_o be_v not_o within_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o w._n 1_n do_v deceitful_o confound_v of_o which_o i_o have_v say_v more_o in_o the_o end_n and_o show_v you_o by_o a_o instance_n of_o philastrius_n how_o mischievous_a it_o be_v to_o abuse_v the_o name_n of_o heresy_n against_o every_o different_a opinion_n of_o true_a christian_n and_o so_o to_o make_v heretic_n of_o all_o believer_n in_o the_o world_n chap._n iii_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o the_o word_n pope_n w._n j._n by_o pope_n i_o mean_v st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o his_o lawful_a successor_n in_o the_o see_v of_o 1_o rome_n have_v authority_n by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o govern_v all_o particular_a church_n next_o under_o christ._n r._n b._n i_o be_o never_o the_o near_o know_v the_o pope_n by_o this_o till_o i_o know_v how_o st._n peter_n successor_n may_v be_v know_v to_o i_o q._n 1._o what_o personal_a qualification_n be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la w._n j._n such_o as_o be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la of_o other_o bishop_n which_o i_o suppose_v you_o know_v r._n b._n if_o so_o than_o all_o those_o be_v no_o pope_n that_o be_v heretic_n or_o deny_v essential_a point_n of_o faith_n w._n j._n it_o be_v true_a they_o be_v no_o pope_n while_o
no_o man_n can_v say_v that_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o people_n be_v always_o for_o he_o that_o carry_v it_o at_o last_o as_o right_v but_o if_o you_o mean_v as_o you_o seem_v that_o the_o universal_a or_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o people_n be_v the_o determine_a cause_n that_o must_v qualify_v the_o person_n for_o the_o power_n then_o either_o you_o mean_v a_o antecedent_n or_o a_o consequent_a consent_n if_o antecedent_n that_o be_v election_n which_o you_o say_v may_v vary_v if_o consequent_a it_o can_v not_o cause_v that_o which_o be_v cause_v before_o and_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o consequent_a consent_n of_o the_o most_o of_o the_o people_n deprive_v the_o king_n of_o his_o power_n or_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v in_o a_o usurper_n 3._o but_o see_v you_o here_o also_o say_v that_o consecration_n be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a nor_o election_n by_o any_o one_o sort_n or_o way_n but_o may_v be_v vary_v as_o time_n vary_v you_o have_v make_v either_o any_o man_n a_o bishop_n that_o any_o man_n will_v choose_v or_o you_o have_v make_v no_o man_n a_o bishop_n for_o want_v of_o a_o determine_a application_n or_o no_o man_n can_v know_v himself_o or_o be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n if_o the_o question_n be_v who_o be_v the_o true_a husband_n of_o such_o a_o woman_n and_o you_o shall_v say_v that_o her_o own_o antecedent_n consent_n or_o election_n be_v not_o necessary_a but_o without_o it_o sometime_o the_o king_n election_n sometime_o the_o minister_n sometime_o the_o parent_n may_v serve_v and_o matrimonial_a celebration_n be_v not_o necessary_a it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o woman_n may_v have_v a_o husband_n against_o her_o will_n and_o before_o she_o consent_v and_o she_o may_v have_v many_o or_o can_v never_o know_v which_o be_v he_o for_o the_o king_n may_v choose_v she_o one_o and_o the_o priest_n another_o and_o the_o parent_n a_o three_o so_o here_o 4._o and_o if_o his_o consecration_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o episcopacy_n how_o will_v you_o prove_v ordination_n necessary_a to_o the_o priesthood_n here_o i_o note_v r._n b._n that_o he_o resolve_v the_o mystery_n of_o their_o succession_n and_o mission_n into_o popular_a consent_n 5._o to_o this_o w._n i._o say_v that_o he_o mean_v it_o only_o as_o the_o mean_n of_o know_v it_o ans._n but_o i_o inquire_v of_o the_o cause_n or_o evidence_n by_o which_o a_o bishop_n may_v be_v know_v from_o a_o usurper_n what_o it_o be_v that_o make_v he_o a_o bishop_n as_o i_o will_v know_v a_o man_n from_o a_o brute_n a_o judge_n a_o physician_n a_o merchant_n from_o other_o man_n but_o he_o dare_v not_o come_v to_o this_o because_o guilt_n make_v they_o conscious_a of_o their_o own_o defect_n but_o w._n i._n say_v p._n 50_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o some_o generality_n of_o election_n be_v determine_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la ans._n let_v they_o be_v such_o that_o i_o may_v know_v a_o bishop_n from_o a_o usurper_n by_o and_o it_o be_v enough_o w._n j._n as_o that_o it_o he_o do_v by_o christian_n by_o such_o as_o be_v capable_a to_o know_v who_o be_v a_o fit_a person_n for_o the_o 6._o office_n choose_v free_o occord_v to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o further_a determination_n be_v leave_v to_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n r._n b._n worse_o still_o 1._o if_o the_o man_n of_o york_n choose_v a_o bishop_n of_o london_n or_o several_a party_n choose_v ten_o bishop_n here_o they_o be_v all_o choose_v by_o christian_n but_o that_o be_v not_o enough_o what_o if_o ten_o party_n choose_v ten_o pope_n ten_o king_n ten_o bishop_n the_o christianity_n of_o the_o chooser_n will_v not_o prove_v they_o all_o authorize_v 2._o nor_o will_v the_o chooser_n capacity_n of_o know_v the_o capable_a prove_v it_o three_o or_o four_o very_a wise_a man_n may_v best_o know_v who_o be_v capable_a to_o be_v a_o judge_n a_o bishop_n a_o husband_n a_o tutor_n a_o physician_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o if_o they_o shall_v choose_v all_o the_o judge_n bishop_n husband_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o land_n the_o person_n choose_v by_o they_o will_v be_v never_o the_o more_o such_o than_o the_o unchosen_a 3._o but_o be_v conscious_a that_o you_o have_v say_v nothing_o you_o put_v in_o these_o word_n according_a to_o the_o 7._o law_n of_o god_n but_o the_o question_n be_v how_o shall_v i_o know_v what_o make_v a_o true_a bishop_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o you_o skilful_o tell_v i_o he_o must_v be_v choose_v by_o know_v christian_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n he_o that_o be_v not_o satisfy_v by_o you_o with_o such_o talk_n let_v he_o be_v unsatisfied_a r._n b._n i_o here_o note_v again_o that_o by_o his_o way_n none_o of_o our_o church_n be_v disable_v from_o the_o plea_n of_o a_o continue_a succession_n for_o want_v of_o episcopal_a consecration_n ordination_n or_o due_a election_n 2._o but_o that_o we_o can_v know_v their_o bishop_n to_o be_v true_a bishop_n because_o we_o can_v know_v that_o they_o have_v common_a consent_n he_o answer_v w._n j._n no_o man_n argue_v you_o of_o the_o want_n of_o succession_n in_o your_o respective_a see_v because_o you_o want_v episcopal_a consecration_n but_o because_o you_o want_v episcopal_a election_n confirmation_n vocation_n mission_n 8._o jurisdiction_n for_o your_o first_o bishop_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n and_o the_o same_o be_v of_o your_o minister_n of_o parish_n be_v intrude_v by_o secular_a power_n the_o capitula_fw-la have_v the_o present_a power_n of_o elect_v the_o bishop_n vid._n caet_fw-la r._n b._n 1._o it_o be_v well_o we_o be_v now_o quite_o rid_v of_o the_o old_a cavil_n of_o the_o nagshead_n consecration_n why_o be_v not_o this_o confess_v soon_o do_v you_o well_o to_o abuse_v the_o people_n so_o long_o 2._o i_o think_v we_o have_v nothing_o to_o have_v prove_v but_o due_a qualification_n due_a election_n or_o consent_n and_o due_a ordination_n or_o consecration_n but_o here_o now_o come_v in_o i_o know_v not_o what_o and_o how_o much_o more_o confirmation_n vocation_n mission_n jurisdiction_n all_o hard_a word_n have_v i_o put_v he_o but_o to_o have_v tell_v we_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o also_o what_o work_n shall_v i_o have_v make_v he_o 1._o what_o be_v confirmation_n without_o which_o qualification_n election_n and_o ordination_n make_v not_o a_o true_a minister_n or_o bishop_n o_o that_o we_o know_v it_o 2._o what_o be_v vocation_n beside_o the_o three_o aforesaid_a and_o which_o be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la 3._o and_o what_o be_v mission_n beside_o those_o three_o which_o be_v also_o so_o necessary_a 4._o and_o what_o mean_v he_o by_o jurisdiction_n that_o be_v want_v be_v it_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o collator_n or_o of_o the_o receiver_n not_o the_o former_a for_o we_o never_o know_v that_o god_n give_v any_o jurisdiction_n to_o the_o clergy_n but_o the_o pastoral_n power_n of_o guide_v the_o church_n by_o the_o word_n and_o key_n which_o be_v the_o work_n of_o their_o own_o office_n and_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ordainer_n be_v ●…o_o ordain_v and_o if_o he_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v or_o consecrate_v he_o have_v that_o jurisdiction_n which_o consist_v of_o that_o power_n if_o it_o be_v the_o receiver_n jurisdiction_n that_o he_o mean_v that_o be_v the_o same_o contradiction_n for_o to_o ordain_v one_o to_o the_o pastoral_n office_n be_v to_o give_v he_o all_o the_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v part_n of_o that_o office_n and_o for_o any_o other_o jurisdiction_n we_o wish_v prince_n will_v keep_v it_o both_o from_o the_o ordainer_n and_o the_o ordain_v but_o he_o say_v that_o our_o bishop_n want_v episcopal_a election_n be_v it_o come_v to_o that_o and_o yet_o the_o way_n of_o election_n all_o this_o while_n make_v so_o indifferent_a what_o be_v episcop●…l_a election_n not_o a_o election_n by_o bishop_n that_o you_o affirm_v not_o not_o a_o election_n to_o be_v bishop_n that_o you_o deny_v they_o not_o it_o be_v therefore_o such_o a_o election_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o bishop_n and_o what_o be_v that_o why_o all_o that_o we_o have_v be_v able_a to_o extort_v from_o you_o be_v that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o christian_n capable_a to_o know_v fit_a person_n choose_v free_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o what_o it_o be_v that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o what_o measure_n of_o consonancy_n to_o the_o word_n and_o in_o what_o point_n be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la you_o dare_v never_o tell_v we_o and_o we_o say_v that_o our_o bishop_n be_v choose_v by_o christian_n capable_a of_o know_v fit_a person_n i_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v my_o own_o judgement_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o choice_n or_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n who_o they_o be_v to_o oversee_v and_o
of_o the_o presbyter_n where_o there_o be_v any_o under_o they_o and_o so_o think_v your_o own_o bishop_n for_o above_o 600_o year_n even_o when_o gregory_n one_a write_v his_o epistle_n but_o if_o you_o have_v assert_v that_o it_o will_v do_v more_o to_o unpope_n and_o unbishop_n your_o church_n than_o to_o disprove_v we_o but_o he_o say_v that_o the_o capitula_fw-la have_v the_o power_n of_o elect_a bishop_n and_o of_o constitute_v parish-priest_n in_o such_o place_n as_o want_v they_o ans._n 1._o suppose_v they_o have_v you_o say_v no_o particular_a elector_n act_n be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la and_o why_o they_o 2._o but_o quo_fw-la jure_fw-la by_o what_o right_n can_v one_o dean_n and_o chapter_n of_o a_o city_n elect_v a_o overseer_n of_o many_o hundred_o parish-priest_n and_o many_o score_n or_o hundred_o thousand_o soul_n without_o their_o consent_n you_o dare_v not_o say_v that_o god_n give_v they_o that_o power_n and_o if_o man_n do_v it_o what_o man_n be_v they_o if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o be_v man_n that_o have_v more_o power_n in_o england_n than_o the_o king_n parliament_n and_o the_o consent_a people_n you_o must_v prove_v it_o if_o you_o lay_v it_o on_o any_o foreign_a power_n pope_n and_o council_n we_o will_v deny_v their_o power_n here_o and_o herein_o what_o man_n do_v man_n may_v undo_v 3._o but_o indeed_o your_o mere_a capitular_a election_n be_v null_a and_o contrary_a to_o god_n word_n and_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n by_o god_n word_n the_o consent_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o of_o the_o ordainer_n and_o of_o the_o ordain_v make_v a_o pastor_n bishop_n or_o presbyter_n by_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o empire_n sometime_o the_o great_a neighbour-bishop_n assume_v the_o power_n and_o sometime_o council_n overtop_v they_o all_o and_o undo_v what_o they_o do_v and_o sometime_o the_o emperor_n put_v in_o and_o out_o as_o please_v they_o as_o solomon_n put_v out_o abiathar_n but_o always_o the_o people_n election_n or_o acceptance_n be_v necessary_a for_o instance_n when_o gregory_n nazianzen_n have_v confute_v the_o macedonian_n and_o arrian_n and_o increase_v the_o church_n at_o constantinople_n though_o the_o arrian_n bishop_n since_o valens_n time_n keep_v the_o great_a church_n gregory_n have_v a_o little_a one_o and_o be_v choose_v their_o bishop_n by_o the_o orthodox_n people_n alone_o this_o be_v his_o first_o title_n after_o that_o peter_z bishop_n of_o alexandria_n make_v he_o bishop_n quantum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la or_o confirm_v he_o this_o be_v his_o additional_a title_n after_o this_o the_o same_z peter_z bribe_v by_o money_n without_o recall_v his_o former_a grant_n make_v maximus_n a_o right_n seeker_n of_o a_o bishopric_n as_o the_o world_n have_v since_o go_v bishop_n in_o his_o stead_n the_o people_n refuse_v the_o change_n and_o retain_v gregory_n afterwards_o maximus_n get_v both_o peter_n and_o the_o egyptian_a bishop_n to_o make_v he_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n where_o be_v the_o pope_n all_o this_o while_n the_o people_n still_o keep_v close_o to_o gregory_n afterwards_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n return_v from_o the_o west_n put_v gregory_n in_o possession_n of_o the_o great_a church_n and_o turn_v out_o the_o arrian_n and_o confirm_v he_o bishop_n after_o this_o miletius_n of_o antioch_n and_o a_o council_n at_o constantinople_n make_v gregory_n bishop_n after_o this_o more_o bishop_n come_v in_o to_o the_o council_n get_v the_o major_a vote_n and_o he_o discern_v that_o they_o be_v resolve_v to_o depose_v he_o depart_v request_v the_o emperor_n leave_n as_o see_v the_o doleful_a division_n and_o contentiousness_n of_o the_o bishop_n not_o otherwise_o to_o be_v quiet_v entreat_v the_o emperor_n to_o keep_v they_o in_o some_o unity_n and_o peace_n lest_o it_o shall_v disgrace_v and_o ruin_v the_o new_o reform_a church_n and_o the_o council_n judgement_n make_v nectarius_n bishop_n the_o pope_n in_o all_o this_o never_o mind_v by_o this_o one_o instance_n you_o may_v see_v how_o bishop_n be_v then_o make_v in_o the_o great_a place_n though_o in_o lesser_a the_o election_n of_o the_o people_n and_o presbyter_n and_o the_o ordination_n of_o three_o neighbour-bishop_n do_v suffice_v according_a to_o the_o ancient_a rule_n and_o custom_n but_o he_o say_v that_o the_o old_a bishop_n be_v live_v and_o not_o legal_o depose_v ans._n 1._o sub_fw-la judicelis_fw-la est_fw-la we_o say_v they_o be_v 2._o some_o desert_v 3._o a_o illegal_a removal_n of_o the_o former_a do_v not_o ever_o nullisie_a the_o title_n of_o the_o latter_a viz._n when_o the_o flock_n consent_v to_o the_o change_n etc._n etc._n else_o what_o seat_n be_v there_o that_o have_v not_o have_v their_o succession_n interrupt_v and_o corrupt_v but_o none_o more_o than_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n and_o alexandria_n what_o poison_n fight_n unjust_a deposition_n and_o schism_n have_v make_v way_n for_o succession_n be_v your_o papacy_n therefore_o null_a but_o methinks_v it_o be_v a_o strange_a novelty_n that_o he_o make_v the_o capitula_fw-la to_o have_v have_v the_o right_n of_o choose_v not_o only_o the_o bishop_n but_o all_o the_o parish-priest_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o patron_n or_o the_o 9_o prince_n power_n which_o i_o think_v be_v as_o good_a as_o the_o chapter_n who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o people_n do_v always_o choose_v the_o presbyter_n and_o not_o the_o chapter_n but_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v intrude_v by_o seculor_n power_n ans._n and_o be_v not_o your_o pope_n so_o ordinary_o till_o hildebrand_n get_v the_o better_a of_o the_o emperor_n but_o we_o have_v more_o than_o this_o r._n b._n your_o pope_n have_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o most_o of_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n nor_o for_o aught_o you_o or_o any_o man_n know_v of_o most_o in_o europe_n 10._o w._n j._n of_o what_o christian_n such_o as_o you_o and_o your_o associate_n be_v we_o regard_v that_o no_o more_o than_o do_v the_o ancient_a holy_a pope_n not_o to_o have_v bad_a the_o consent_n of_o the_o nestorian_n eutychian_o pelagian_n donatist_n arrian_n etc._n etc._n r._n b._n contempt_n of_o most_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a proof_n that_o you_o be_v all_o the_o church_n and_o do_v not_o the_o donatist_n say_v the_o same_o before_o you_o and_o what_o but_o the_o sword_n do_v make_v your_o cause_n to_o be_v better_a than_o they_o how_o easy_a be_v it_o for_o any_o sect_n to_o say_v we_o be_v the_o only_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o though_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v against_o we_o we_o regard_v they_o not_o reader_n mark_v the_o truth_n and_o c●…ndor_n of_o these_o man_n when_o we_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o greek_n armenian_n syrian_n jacobite_n georgian_n copty_v abassine_n be_v of_o the_o same_o church_n with_o we_o because_o they_o have_v the_o same_o head_n and_o the_o same_o essential_a faith_n the_o papist_n in_o their_o talk_n and_o write_n tell_v we_o that_o they_o be_v more_o of_o their_o mind_n than_o of_o we_o and_o that_o indeed_o they_o be_v not_o heretic_n but_o well-meaning-man_n but_o when_o we_o tell_v they_o then_o how_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v against_o their_o pope_n pretend_v universal_a power_n they_o number_v all_o these_o then_o with_o heretic_n as_o not_o to_o be_v regard_v but_o abundance_n of_o their_o own_o writer_n yea_o such_o as_o have_v live_v among_o they_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o other_o part_n do_v vindicate_v the_o generality_n of_o these_o foreign_a christian_n from_o the_o charge_n of_o heresy_n 2._o but_o do_v not_o the_o world_n know_v that_o a_o man_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v rightful_a pope_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o cardinal_n a_o upstart_n sort_n of_o thing_n have_v choose_v he_o before_o ever_o any_o of_o the_o people_n of_o europe_n even_a papist_n do_v consent_n but_o perhaps_o he_o will_v say_v that_o the_o people_n consent_n that_o these_o shall_v be_v the_o chooser_n sure_o they_o do_v not_o so_o till_o hildebrand_n day_n nor_o since_o any_o otherwise_o than_o by_o silence_n or_o nonresistance_n where_o they_o have_v no_o place_n to_o speak_v nor_o power_n to_o resist_v even_o as_o the_o countryman_n consent_v to_o the_o conquer_a army_n that_o oppress_v they_o r._n b._n it_o be_v few_o of_o your_o own_o people_n that_o know_v who_o be_v pope_n much_o less_o be_v call_v to_o consent_v till_o after_o 11._o he_o be_v settle_v in_o possession_n w._n j._n what_o then_o be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o all_o elective_a prince_n where_o the_o extent_n of_o their_o dominion_n be_v exceed_v large_a r._n b._n 1._o i_o confess_v when_o we_o have_v a_o elective_a king_n of_o all_o the_o world_n i_o have_v rather_o cardinal_n choose_v he_o at_o rome_n than_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v meet_v to_o choose_v he_o and_o if_o
deny_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n and_o that_o as_o by_o tradition_n and_o how_o lame_a their_o tradition_n be_v which_o be_v carry_v but_o by_o their_o private_a affirmation_n and_o be_v but_o the_o unproved_a say_n of_o a_o sect._n to_o this_o he_o say_v w._n j._n that_o this_o belong_v to_o our_o controversy_n and_o not_o to_o the_o explication_n of_o our_o term_n and_o so_o i_o must_v pass_v it_o by_o r._n b._n q._n 2._o what_o proof_n or_o notice_n must_v satisfy_v as_o in_o particular_n what_o be_v true_a tradition_n 2._o w._n j._n such_o as_o with_o proportion_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n or_o notice_n of_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o temporal_a kingdom_n r._n b._n but_o you_o dare_v not_o tell_v we_o what_o that_o be_v that_o be_v proportionable_a this_o be_v answer_v before_o i_o add_v be_v it_o necessary_a for_o every_o christian_n to_o be_v able_a to_o weigh_v the_o credit_n of_o contradicting-party_n when_o one_o half_a of_o the_o world_n say_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o other_o another_o thing_n what_o opportunity_n have_v ordinary_a christian_n to_o compare_v they_o and_o discern_v the_o moral_a advantage_n on_o each_o side_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n when_o two_o or_o three_o part_n be_v against_o it_o and_o the_o rest_n for_o it_o do_v salvation_n lie_v on_o this_o w._n j._n as_o much_o as_o they_o have_v to_o know_v which_o book_n be_v and_o which_o be_v not_o canonical_a scripture_n among_o those_o that_o be_v in_o controversy_n r._n b._n that_o these_o book_n be_v send_v to_o the_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n 1._o be_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n 2._o and_o a_o assertion_n easy_o remember_v 3._o and_o all_o the_o church_n be_v agree_v of_o all_o that_o we_o take_v as_o ca●…cal_a 4._o and_o yet_o man_n that_o practical_o believe_v but_o the_o creed_n and_o summary_n of_o religion_n shall_v certain_o be_v save_v though_o they_o erroneous_o doubt_v of_o some_o of_o the_o uncontroverted_a book_n as_o chronicle_n esther_n canticle_n etc._n etc._n much_o more_o that_o receive_v not_o the_o controvert_v apocrypha_fw-la but_o 1._o your_o tradition_n in_o question_n be_v many_o particular_n hard_o for_o to_o be_v remember_v 2._o and_o that_o of_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o fact_n where_o a_o word_n forget_v or_o alter_v change_v the_o thing_n 3._o and_o most_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n be_v against_o it_o 4._o and_o you_o will_v lay_v the_o people_n salvation_n on_o it_o yea_o and_o make_v it_o one_o of_o your_o cheat_a quibble_n to_o prove_v your_o religion_n safe_a than_o we_o because_o some_o protestant_n say_v a_o papist_n may_v be_v save_v but_o you_o say_v that_o protestant_n can_v be_v save_v that_o be_v because_o you_o have_v less_o sincerity_n and_o charity_n be_v not_o here_o difference_n enough_o if_o you_o hold_v that_o all_o they_o be_v damn_v that_o believe_v not_o that_o all_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n be_v canonical_a peruse_v bishop_n cousin_n catalogue_n of_o council_n and_o father_n that_o receive_v they_o not_o and_o see_v whether_o you_o damn_v not_o almost_o all_o the_o church_n but_o if_o you_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n for_o man_n to_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o your_o pope_n than_o there_o be_v that_o they_o try_v all_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v canonical_a and_o know_v it_o why_o then_o do_v you_o find_v your_o belief_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n upon_o your_o forebelieve_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v his_o vicar_n or_o your_o church_n his_o church_n and_o why_o do_v you_o make_v such_o a_o stir_n in_o the_o world_n to_o affright_v poor_a people_n to_o believe_v and_o be_v subject_a to_o your_o pope_n i_o here_o ask_v he_o must_v all_o the_o people_n here_o take_v the_o word_n of_o their_o present_a teacher_n and_o he_o humane_a dare_v not_o answer_v yea_o or_o nay_o but_o as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v for_o the_o determination_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n ans._n if_o it_o be_v no_o more_o it_o give_v they_o no_o certainty_n but_o by_o the_o belief_n of_o one_o man_n as_o a_o teacher_n they_o be_v broug●…●…o_o ●…cern_v themselves_o those_o notify_a evidence_n by_o which_o the_o teacher_n himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d book_n be_v 〈◊〉_d and_o if_o they_o attain_v no_o high_a than_o to_o believe_v fide_fw-la d●…_n the_o 〈◊〉_d doctrine_n the_o doubt_v or_o ignorance_n of_o some_o text_n or_o book_n will_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o scripture_n that_o impress_n of_o divine_a authority_n which_o to_o a_o prepare_a hea●…_n o●…_n reader_n will_v 〈◊〉_d convince_v he_o that_o they_o be_v of_o god_n though_o not_o r●…e_v he_o of_o every_o particular_a text_n and_o book_n r._n b._n then_o most_o of_o the_o world_n must_v believe_v against_o you_o because_o most_o of_o the_o teacher_n be_v against_o 4._o you_o tradition_n quite_o ●…eth_v p●…er_n w._n j._n there_o be_v no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n unite_v in_o the_o same_o profession_n of_o faith_n external_a communion_n and_o dependence_n of_o pastor_n which_o be_v contrary_a in_o belief_n ●…o_o 〈◊〉_d any_o way_n to_o be_v parallel_n with_o we_o in_o extent_n and_o multitude_n prove_v there_o be_v and_o name_v it_o all_o our_o adversary_n together_o be_v a_o patch_a body_n of_o a_o thousand_o different_a profession_n and_o as_o much_o adversary_n one_o to_o another_o as_o they_o be_v to_o we_o the_o one_o justify_v we_o in_o that_o wherein_o the_o other_o condemn_v we_o so_o that_o no_o beed_n be_v to_o be_v take_v to_o their_o testimony_n non_fw-la sunt_fw-la convenientia_fw-la r_o b._n they_o agree_v not_o with_o your_o interest_n but_o if_o the_o testimony_n and_o tradition_n of_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v not_o to_o be_v heed_v i_o doubt_v the_o testimony_n of_o your_o three_o or_o four_o part_n will_v prove_v much_o less_o regardable_a let_v we_o try_v the_o case_n for_o here_o you_o be_v utter_o confound_v 1_o indeed_o none_o that_o our_o ordinary_a language_n call_v a_o congregation_n that_o be_v man_n that_o meet_v local_o together_o be_v so_o big_a as_o all_o your_o party_n but_o a_o church_n far_o better_a unite_v than_o you_o be_v be_v far_o great_a than_o you_o those_o that_o have_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n ☞_o be_v that_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o reform_a church_n the_o greek_n armenian_n abassine_n syrian_n jacobite_n georgian_n copty_v etc._n etc._n have_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n therefore_o they_o be_v that_o one_o church_n of_o christ._n the_o major_n be_v undeniable_a the_o minor_a be_v thus_o prove_v they_o that_o hold_v the_o same_o head_n of_o the_o church_n believe_v in_o the_o same_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o ●…ly_a g●…st_n and_o be_v devote_v to_o he_o in_o the_o same_o baptismal_a covenant_n and_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n desire_n and_o practise_v essential_a to_o christianity_n in_o the_o creed_n lords-prayer_n and_o decalogue_n and_o recei●…e_v all_o the_o ●…re_n as_o god_n ●…ord_n which_o i●…●…y_v here_o receive_v by_o we_o as_o canonical_a these_o have_v all_o the_o ●…ls_n of_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o much_o more_o but_o such_o be_v all_o the_o forementioned_a christian_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o head_n and_o the_o body_n be_v the_o constitutive_a part_n of_o the_o church_n the_o head_n be_v christ_n the_o body_n be_v christian_n 1_o they_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o profession_n of_o faith_n viz._n the_o same_o baptism_n ●…reed_v and_o scripture_n 2._o they_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o external_a communion_n if_o you_o mean_v external_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o it_o and_o much_o more_o they_o have_v the_o same_o scripture_n read_v and_o 〈◊〉_d they_o preach_v the_o same_o gospel_n they_o use_v the_o same_o sacrament_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n viz._n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n yea_o they_o be_v common_o for_o some_o confirmation_n ordination_n 〈◊〉_d of_o penitence_n and_o absolution_n of_o p●…nitents_n matrimony_n etc._n etc._n though_o they_o agree_v not_o whether_o the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n be_v fit_a for_o they_o all_o much_o less_o sacrament_n of_o the_o cove●…_n grace_n they_o observe_v the_o same_o lord_n day_n for_o public_a worship_n they_o pray_v confess_v sin_n give_v thanks_o and_o praise_n to_o god_n and_o hold_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o communication_n to_o each_o other_o in_o want_n this_o be_v their_o external_a communion_n 3._o they_o have_v the_o same_o depen●…_n of_o the_o people_n on_o their_o pastor_n as_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n authorize_v to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o guide_v the_o church_n and_o to_o go_v before_o they_o in_o the_o public_a worship_v of_o god_n but_o if_o
you_o mean_v that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o same_o ext●…_n communion_n of_o pastor_n in_o dependence_n on_o one_o as_o the_o 〈◊〉_d pastor_n or_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n indeed_o there_o be_v none_o such_o but_o you_o for_o it_o be_v in_o that_o that_o they_o differ_v from_o you_o reader_n be_v not_o here_o a_o excellent_a disputer_n i_o affirm_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v against_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o point_n of_o a_o universal_a head_n or_o governor_n of_o all_o 5._o church_n he_o say_v that_o no_o one_o party_n which_o be_v for_o a_o universal_a governor_n and_o yet_o be_v against_o a_o universal_a governor_n be_v so_o big_a as_o their_o party_n i_o grant_v it_o have_v they_o all_o dependence_n on_o one_o as_o a_o universal_a governor_n they_o be_v not_o against_o on_o universal_a governor_n the_o abassine_n have_v one_o abuna_n but_o he_o claim_v no_o universal_a government_n the_o armenian_n have_v their_o catholic_n bishop_n but_o he_o claim_v no_o universal_a power_n the_o greek_n have_v their_o patriarch_n at_o constantinople_n but_o he_o pretend_v not_o to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n we_o be_v all_o against_o any_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n on_o earth_n but_o christ_n and_o therefore_o be_v unite_v under_o no_o other_o you_o say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d patch_a body_n of_o a_o thousand_o different_a profession_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr reproach_n not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v far_o more_o unite_v than_o your_o church_n as_o papal_n be_v not_o the_o se●…en_a point_n of_o 〈◊〉_d mention_v by_o paul_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o as_o good_a as_o you_o 1._o they_o have_v one_o ●…ead_n that_o never_o ●…arieth_v and_o who_o all_o receive_v you_o have_v a_o head_n reject_v by_o most_o christian_n and_o oft_o turn_v into_o two_o or_o three_o head_n one_o say_v i_o be_o the_o head_n and_o another_o i_o be_o the_o head_n and_o set_v the_o world_n in_o blood_n and_o contention_n to_o try_v it_o out_o which_o of_o they_o shall_v get_v the_o better_a as_o your_o forty_o year_n schism_n show_v 2._o therefore_o this_o church_n which_o you_o reproach_n as_o patch_v be_v but_o one_o but_o you_o be_v real_o many_o and_o not_o one_o specifical_o as_o well_o as_o oft_o numerical_o when_o there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o pope_n you_o have_v two_o or_o three_o church_n for_o it_o be_v the_o pars_fw-la imperans_fw-la that_o individuate_v the_o society_n and_o de_fw-fr specie_fw-la you_o be_v still_o three_o church_n as_o hold_v three_o several_a head_n one_o hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o head_n another_o a_o council_n and_o a_o three_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n agree_v and_o these_o head_n have_v oft_o condemn_v and_o depose_v one_o another_o council_n namn_v pope_n as_o heretic_n infidel_n simonist_n murderer_n adulterer_n and_o pope_n accuse_v council_n of_o schism_n and_o rebellion_n at_o least_o and_o to_o this_o day_n there_o be_v no_o certainty_n which_o be_v true_a pope_n nor_o which_o be_v true_a council_n some_o be_v call_v by_o you_o reprobate_n because_o they_o please_v not_o the_o pope_n and_o some_o approve_v but_o our_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o thus_o divide_v nor_o schismatical_a 3_o our_o common_a faith_n be_v still_o the_o same_o and_o its_o rule_n the_o same_o but_o you_o be_v mutable_a by_o new_a addition_n as_o long_a council_n will_v make_v new_a decree_n and_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v when_o you_o have_v all_o and_o your_o faith_n be_v come_v to_o its_o full_a stature_n nay_o and_o your_o decree_n which_o be_v your_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v so_o many_o and_o obscure_a that_o you_o be_v not_o agree_v yourselves_o in_o the_o number_n or_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o 4._o it_o be_v a_o notorious_a truth_n that_o all_o these_o church_n which_o you_o say_v have_v a_o thousand_o profession_n as_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o one_o christian_a profession_n so_o do_v less_o differ_v among_o themselves_o than_o your_o seem_o unite_a church_n do_v with_o itself_o whether_o you_o respect_v the_o number_n or_o the_o weight_n of_o difference_n 1._o for_o the_o number_n sint_fw-la libri_fw-la judices_fw-la all_o the_o christian_a world_n beside_o have_v not_o so_o many_o nor_o i_o think_v half_a so_o many_o volume_n of_o controversy_n as_o your_o writer_n have_v write_v against_o one_o another_o as_o far_o as_o be_v come_v to_o the_o notice_n of_o this_o part_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o and_o for_o the_o weight_n 1._o i_o have_v show_v that_o you_o be_v divide_v in_o your_o very_a fundamental_o the_o supremacy_n you_o confess_v here_o that_o your_o church_n be_v not_o at_o all_o agree_v what_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v or_o who_o be_v a_o christian_n some_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v the_o church_n and_o that_o god_n be_v a_o rewarder_n other_o say_v a_o christian_a must_v believe_v in_o christ_n etc._n etc._n 2._o your_o commentator_n differ_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o of_o text_n of_o god_n own_o word_n 3_o your_o disputer_n about_o grace_n and_o freewill_n accuse_v one_o the_o other_o of_o make_v god_n the_o cause_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o deny_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n 4._o your_o moralist_n differ_v about_o many_o instance_n of_o excommunicate_a king_n and_o then_o kill_v they_o and_o of_o the_o pope_n power_n to_o depose_v they_o and_o of_o perjury_n lie_v murder_n adultery_n fornication_n false_a witness_n yea_o about_o love_a god_n himself_o whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o love_v he_o once_o a_o year_n or_o whether_o attrition_n that_o be_v repentance_n from_o bare_a fear_n with_o penance_n may_v not_o serve_v turn_n to_o salvation_n with_o abundance_n such_o and_o we_o confess_v that_o other_o christian_n have_v their_o difference_n and_o what_o wonder_v while_o they_o be_v so_o imperfect_a in_o knowledge_n and_o all_o grace_n and_o now_o if_o concord_n or_o discord_n must_v tell_v we_o who_o tradition_n or_o judgement_n be_v most_o regardable_a let_v the_o impartial_a judge_n whether_o the_o mo●…●…egardable_a tradition_n of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o against_o you_o and_o whether_o your_o reproach_v they_o for_o discord_n condemn_v not_o yourselves_o much_o more_o than_o they_o if_o a_o subject_n shall_v style_v himself_o the_o king_n vicegerent_n and_o claim_n much_o of_o his_o prerogative_n without_o his_o commission_n and_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v unite_v in_o receive_v and_o obey_v he_o and_o have_v otherwise_o a_o thousand_o contention_n among_o they_o qu._n whether_o these_o or_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v the_o more_o and_o better_o unite_v when_o i_o next_o question_v whether_o the_o vulgar_a that_o know_v not_o council_n resolve_v not_o their_o 6._o faith_n into_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o parish-priest_n he_o say_v no._n and_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n be_v but_o the_o mean_n by_o who_o we_o come_v to_o believe_v and_o tell_v we_o that_o else_o we_o know_v not_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o christian_n 500_o year_n ago_o etc._n etc._n ans._n but_o if_o they_o will_v be_v content_a with_o ministerial_a teach_n and_o historical_a proof_n of_o thing_n past_a we_o will_v not_o differ_v from_o they_o we_o do_v not_o only_o assert_v these_o as_o well_o as_o they_o but_o we_o say_v that_o as_o we_o have_v sound_a teach_n so_o we_o have_v far_o better_a historical_a tradition_n of_o our_o faith_n than_o that_o which_o depend_v on_o a_o pretend_a fan●…tick_a infallibility_n or_o authority_n of_o their_o pope_n and_o sect_n even_o the_o historical_a tradition_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o of_o many_o of_o the_o enemy_n themselves_o chap._n vi_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o a_o general_z council_n w._n i._n a_o general_n council_n i_o take_v to_o be_v a_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n and_o other_o chief_a prelate_n call_v 1_o convene_v confirm_v by_o those_o who_o have_v sufficient_a spiritual_a authority_n to_o call_v convene_v and_o confirm_v it_o r._n b._n here_o be_v nothing_o still_o but_o fly_v and_o hide_v his_o cause_n be_v such_o that_o he_o dare_v not_o answer_v note_v that_o 1._o here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o what_o extent_n it_o must_v be_v at_o all_o whether_o these_o prelate_n must_v be_v send_v from_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o whence_o the_o least_o provincial_a council_n that_o ever_o be_v call_v may_v be_v a_o general_n council_n by_o this_o description_n 2._o he_o tell_v we_o of_o other_o chief_a prelate_n and_o yet_o never_o tell_v what_o sort_n of_o thing_n he_o mean_v by_o chief_a prelate_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n and_o when_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o doubtless_o he_o will_v never_o prove_v nor_o i_o hope_v affirm_v that_o any_o such_o prelate_n be_v of_o christ_n institution_n and_o if_o the_o
will_v not_o pretend_v 7._o be_v it_o not_o a_o impudent_a thing_n for_o any_o man_n to_o call_v together_o all_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o world_n 6._o if_o it_o be_v not_o desire_v that_o they_o come_v why_o be_v they_o call_v ludicrous_a hypocrisy_n beseem_v not_o matter_n of_o this_o moment_n if_o it_o be_v desire_v only_o that_o they_o ch●…e_v some_o few_o among_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v the_o choose_n of_o those_o few_o only_a that_o shall_v be_v require_v but_o if_o all_o be_v intend_v the_o devil_n can_v scarce_o make_v a_o more_o 〈◊〉_d motion_n what!_o for_o all_o the_o bishop_n on_o earth_n 1._o to_o forsake_v their_o charge_n most_o of_o they_o for_o many_o year_n 2._o to_o lose_v so_o many_o year_n time_n in_o travel_n and_o session_n 3._o to_o lose_v the_o life_n of_o so_o many_o as_o be_v never_o like_a to_o endure_v voyage_n and_o journey_n by_o sea_n and_o land_n so_o long_o with_o strange_a air_n and_o other_o difficulty_n etc._n etc._n but_o why_o shall_v i_o stay_v to_o shame_v such_o madness_n when_o though_o w._n i._o be_v fain_o to_o vent_v it_o their_o sect_n never_o intend_v nor_o attempt_v any_o such_o thing●…_n but_o suppose_v it_o be_v but_o some_o delegate_v bishop_n that_o he_o plead_v for_o to_o make_v a_o universal_a council_n i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o 2d_o part_n of_o my_o book_n call_v a_o key_n for_o catholic_n how_o impossible_a and_o wicked_a the_o design_n of_o a_o true_a universal_a council_n be_v for_o 1._o they_o must_v be_v so_o many_o from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o may_v make_v it_o a_o equal_a representative_a and_o not_o two_o or_o three_o from_o the_o remote_a part_n and_o 200_o from_o italy_n and_o other_o near_a part_n or_o else_o it_o be_v a_o putid_v mockery_n 2._o some_o church_n have_v a_o 100_o bishop_n over_o so_o many_o christian_n as_o in_o other_o country_n be_v under_o one_o only_a most_o report_n that_o in_o all_o abassia_n there_o be_v but_o one_o abuna_n which_o though_o it_o be_v not_o now_o so_o big_a as_o it_o have_v be_v or_o as_o alvarez_n say_v yet_o be_v like_a to_o be_v as_o big_a as_o brierwood_n conclude_v viz._n as_o france_n spain_n italy_n and_o germany_n and_o shall_v that_o one_o abuna_n leave_v his_o country_n to_o have_v no_o more_o vote_n than_o pate_n or_o ola●…_n magnus_n have_v at_o trent_n 3._o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n have_v not_o half_a so_o many_o able_a teacher_n as_o they_o need_v especial_o the_o remote_a part_n and_o it_o will_v be_v cruelty_n to_o the_o people_n soul_n to_o call_v away_o from_o they_o proportionable_a representative_n 4_o none_o be_v so_o fit_a man_n for_o the_o great_a business_n of_o council_n as_o the_o able_a boly_a experience_v bishop_n and_o these_o be_v most_o of_o they_o age_a sickly_a and_o weak_a and_o unfit_a for_o so_o long_a travel_n 5._o abassia_n 〈◊〉_d not_o seaport_n and_o the_o armenian_n and_o other_o nation_n be_v out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o such_o necessary_a converse_n as_o must_v due_o warn_v all_o of_o the_o time_n and_o place_n 6._o the_o bishop_n be_v under_o prince_n of_o such_o various_a religion_n mind_n and_o interest_n as_o they_o can_v never_o agree_v to_o a_o true_a council_n will_v the_o turk_n that_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o christianity_n give_v leave_n to_o the_o greek_a bishop_n proportionable_o to_o come_v will_v the_o country_n that_o be_v in_o war_n with_o those_o that_o send_v they_o give_v they_o a_o free_a passage_n 7._o the_o time_n will_v be_v so_o long_o in_o pass_v from_o abassia_n armenia_n st._n thomas_n mexico_n the_o antipode_n and_o stay_v at_o the_o council_n and_o return_v that_o few_o be_v like_a to_o come_v home_o alive_a and_o so_o the_o bishop_n be_v murder_v and_o the_o country_n receive_v not_o any_o just_a account_n of_o their_o transaction_n 8._o when_o they_o come_v together_o the_o number_n will_v be_v so_o great_a as_o that_o they_o can_v not_o hear_v what_o be_v say_v by_o one_o another_o 9_o and_o many_o will_v understand_v and_o speak_v no_o one_o common_a language_n with_o the_o rest_n and_o so_o be_v uncapable_a of_o that_o right_a understanding_n and_o communication_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o end_n 10._o and_o their_o judgement_n and_o interest_n will_v be_v so_o cross_a as_o will_v render_v the_o council_n too_o like_o a_o pitch_a field_n and_o when_o they_o have_v weary_v themselves_o to_o go_v home_o to_o the_o further_a part_n of_o the_o world_n with_o no_o better_a a_o account_n but_o that_o they_o be_v over-voted_n by_o a_o great_a number_n of_o european_n who_o live_v near_o and_o under_o the_o pope_n be_v awe_v by_o his_o power_n or_o by_o ass_v by_o interest_n what_o good_a will_v this_o do_v the_o country_n that_o send_v they_o and_o all_o this_o wicked_a and_o impossible_a design_n arise_v from_o the_o idle_a brain_n of_o man_n without_o any_o true_a usefulness_n or_o need_n or_o any_o ground_n of_o god_n word_n or_o reason_n only_o because_o in_o one_o empire_n there_o be_v oft_o such_o thing_n as_o general_n council_n which_o yet_o be_v like_a to_o field_n of_o war_n and_o have_v tear_v the_o imperial_a church_n all_o to_o piece_n have_v not_o some_o emperor_n do_v much_o to_o keep_v the_o peace_n so_o that_o pighius_fw-la say_v that_o general_a council_n themselves_o be_v but_o a_o new_a devise_n of_o constantine_n and_o not_o of_o god_n institution_n nor_o of_o necessity_n r._n b._n i_o next_o ask_v of_o he_o if_o all_o must_v be_v call_v and_o but_o some_o come_v whether_o th●…se_n that_o never_o come_v there_o through_o distance_n age_n prohibition_n of_o prince_n poverty_n &c_n &c_n be_v any_o part_n of_o the_o council_n and_o so_o 7._o whether_o it_o be_v general_n because_o those_o shall_v come_v that_o do_v not_o if_o that_o will_v serve_v what_o if_o none_o come_v when_o all_o be_v call_v he_o answer_v w._n j._n as_o it_o be_v a_o true_a parliament_n if_o a_o competent_a number_n come_v when_o all_o be_v call_v ●…o_o here_o r._n b._n 1._o the_o validity_n of_o a_o few_o man_n act_n come_v from_o the_o fundamental_a constitution_n which_o be_v as_o the_o law_n to_o they_o but_o who_o make_v such_o a_o law_n for_o all_o the_o world_n if_o god_n do_v show_v it_o to_o we_o if_o man_n who_o and_o by_o what_o power_n whether_o all_o be_v right_a and_o valid_a that_o be_v do_v in_o a_o parliament_n or_o not_o when_o few_o be_v there_o yet_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o rest_n be_v absent_a parliament_n meet_v and_o act_v under_o law_n but_o council_n meet_v as_o equal_v upon_o mere_a and_o voluntary_a consent_n the_o law_n may_v oblige_v all_o the_o land_n by_o that_o which_o a_o few_o man_n do_v but_o if_o there_o be_v a_o meeting_n e._n g._n as_o now_o at_o n●…mengen_n of_o the_o agent_n of_o free_a prince_n who_o can_v oblige_v ten_o by_o the_o act_n of_o two_o without_o their_o consent_n however_o if_o only_a european_n be_v at_o the_o council_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o african_n asian_o and_o american_n be_v absent_a and_o if_o absent_a their_o judgement_n and_o consent_n be_v not_o there_o signify_v and_o therefore_o if_o your_o question_n be_v only_a de_fw-fr nomine_fw-la whether_o forty_o bishop_n may_v be_v call_v a_o general_n council_n while_o the_o rest_n be_v far_o off_o or_o if_o it_o be_v whether_o the_o law_n or_o canon_n of_o a_o small_a or_o provincial_a council_n may_v oblige_v some_o man_n though_o it_o be_v not_o general_a these_o be_v nothing_o to_o our_o present_a business_n 2._o moreover_o be_v all_o the_o world_n under_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o man_n law_n yet_o they_o can_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o wickedness_n self-murder_n neglect_v of_o their_o flock_n and_o to_o impossibility_n therefore_o if_o e._n g_o there_o be_v forty_o bishop_n or_o forty_o two_o at_o trent_n in_o the_o beginning_n and_o 200_o after_o and_o perhaps_o 20000_o absent_a that_o be_v never_o oblige_v to_o be_v there_o the_o question_n be_v both_o whether_o this_o be_v a_o universal_a meeting_n and_o whether_o the_o 20000_o be_v oblige_v by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o 40_o or_o 200_o 3._o and_o if_o they_o be_v oblige_v what_o be_v that_o to_o notify_v the_o tradition_n of_o all_o the_o absent_a church_n can_v you_o know_v their_o mind_n and_o custom_n by_o say_v that_o they_o be_v oblige_v by_o the_o decree_n r._n b._n q._n 4._o may_v none_o but_o bishop_n and_o chief_a prelate_n be_v member_n as_o you_o say_v 8._o w._n j._n no_o other_o unless_o such_o inferior_n as_o be_v send_v to_o supply_v their_o place_n and_o as_o deputy_n of_o those_o bishop_n or_o prelate_n etc._n etc._n r._n b._n note_v here_o 1._o he_o determine_v no_o other_o but_o never_o tell_v we_o quâ_fw-la lege_fw-la and_o who_o it_o
be_v that_o make_v that_o law_n to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v know_v that_o the_o apostle_n elder_n and_o brethren_n be_v ●…senters_n at_o jerusalem_n act_n 15._o 2._o inferior_n may_v come_v as_o deputy_n of_o the_o bishop_n for_o he_o know_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v oft_o send_v such_o to_o council_n so_o far_o off_o as_o his_o gravity_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o go_v to_o but_o be_v these_o priest_n capable_a person_n or_o not_o if_o not_o how_o can_v a_o bishop_n deputation_n make_v they_o capable_a what_o if_o a_o priest_n depute_v a_o layman_n to_o consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n or_o a_o bishop_n depute_v a_o priest_n or_o deacon_n only_o to_o ordain_v will_v the_o deputation_n make_v they_o capable_a but_o if_o they_o be_v capable_a why_o may_v they_o not_o be_v there_o by_o their_o own_o right_a if_o the_o business_n of_o council_n be_v as_o much_o as_o our_o modern_a papist_n tell_v we_o to_o transmit_v the_o tradition_n which_o the_o several_a country_n have_v receive_v from_o their_o ancestor_n why_o may_v not_o ten_o learned_a grave_a priest_n as_o true_o and_o credible_o tell_v what_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o their_o country_n as_o one_o unlearned_a or_o learned_a bishop_n 3._o note_v here_o how_o the_o high_a act_n of_o a_o pope_n or_o prelate_n with_o they_o may_v be_v do_v per_fw-la alios_fw-la by_o deputy_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n to_o preside_v in_o general_a council_n be_v of_o old_a in_o the_o empire_n the_o top_n of_o the_o pope_n prerogative_n and_o yet_o he_o may_v do_v that_o by_o a_o presbyter_n and_o a_o bishop_n may_v vote_n and_o do_v all_o his_o part_n in_o a_o general_n council_n by_o a_o presbyter_n and_o be_v that_o a_o office_n proper_o ecclesiastical_a and_o sacred_a which_o may_v be_v exercise_v by_o other_o not_o of_o that_o office_n why_o then_o may_v not_o a_o layman_n be_v depute_v to_o preach_v baptize_v pray_v consecrate_v and_o administer_v the_o eucharist_n excommunicate_a absolve_v etc._n etc._n if_o depute_a and_o if_o so_o what_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o office_n i_o tell_v he_o of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n where_o be_v a_o multitude_n of_o priest_n and_o he_o answer_v w._n j._n basil_n in_o many_o thing_n be_v not_o allow_v of_o by_o we_o name_v those_o other_o receive_v as_o general_a council_n 9_o by_o we_o that_o have_v simple_a priest_n with_o power_n of_o give_v vote_n as_o such_o r._n b._n see_v reader_n when_o they_o have_v talk_v of_o council_n and_o tradition_n of_o all_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n all_o signify_v but_o what_o please_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o dislike_n can_v make_v council_n and_o their_o judgement_n null_a at_o a_o word_n basil_n be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a council_n that_o ever_o be_v but_o they_o condemn_v and_o depose_v the_o pope_n and_o no_o wonder_n then_o if_o the_o pope_n dislike_v they_o and_o now_o that_o be_v a_o answer_n to_o all_o such_o authority_n basil_n be_v not_o allow_v by_o we_o nor_o be_v any_o thing_n allow_v by_o you_o that_o be_v against_o you_o but_o if_o any_o of_o they_o will_v see_v where_o priest_n have_v have_v vote_n in_o council_n let_v they_o read_v blondel_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o def._n sent._n hieron_n and_o he_o shall_v have_v proof_n enough_o for_o i_o will_v not_o tire_v the_o reader_n with_o vain_a citation_n do_v by_o many_o long_a ago_o only_o i_o note_v 1._o if_o abbot_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n have_v vote_n in_o council_n why_o not_o priest_n save_v the_o pope_n will_n what_o make_v the_o difference_n 2d_o if_o presbyter_n may_v have_v vote_n in_o national_a and_o provincial_a council_n why_o not_o in_o general_a one_o the_o will_v of_o the_o pope_n make_v and_o unmake_n all_o thus_o we_o have_v no_o satisfaction_n what_o a_o general_a council_n be_v chap._n vii_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o schism_n w._n j._n i_o understand_v by_o schism_n a_o wilful_a separation_n or_o division_n of_o one_o self_n from_o the_o whole_a visible_a 1_o church_n of_o christ._n r._n b._n if_o this_o only_a be_v schism_n it_o be_v comfortable_a news_n to_o many_o a_o thousand_o and_o million_o that_o some_o call_v schismatic_n i_o hope_v then_o there_o be_v no_o schismatic_n in_o england_n of_o those_o that_o be_v call_v presbyterian_o erastians_n independent_o separatist_n or_o anabaptist_n for_o i_o know_v not_o one_o of_o these_o that_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n of_o christ._n but_o i_o doubt_v with_o these_o judge_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n go_v for_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n of_o christ._n i_o ask_v here_o q._n 1._o be_v it_o no_o schism_n to_o separate_v from_o a_o particular_a church_n unless_o from_o the_o whole_a 2._o w._n j._n no_o it_o be_v no_o schism_n as_o schism_n be_v take_v in_o the_o holy_a father_n for_o that_o great_a and_o capital_a crime_n so_o severe_o censure_v by_o they_o in_o which_o sense_n only_o i_o take_v it_o here_o r._n b._n 1._o he_o first_o define_v without_o distinguish_v and_o then_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o mean_v only_o one_o sort_n of_o schism_n 2._o let_v the_o reader_n but_o peruse_v all_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o mention_v schism_n and_o see_v whether_o he_o will_v not_o find_v that_o every_o text_n or_o almost_o every_o one_o do_v use_v the_o word_n only_o of_o division_n make_v in_o the_o church_n rather_o than_o of_o divide_v or_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n and_o whether_o such_o separate_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v not_o there_o call_v heresy_n rather_o than_o schism_n but_o see_v it_o be_v only_o this_o capital_a schism_n that_o he_o call_v by_o that_o name_n i_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o draw_v he_o now_o to_o more_o censoriousness_n and_o therefore_o i_o note_v how_o by_o this_o he_o absolve_v the_o protestant_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n w._n j._n do_v not_o your_o first_o protestant_n in_o germany_n separate_v as_o much_o from_o the_o armenian_n ethiopian_n 3_o greek_n as_o they_o do_v from_o the_o roman_n if_o they_o do_v not_o show_v the_o communion_n they_o have_v with_o they_o r._n b._n very_o willing_o sir_n they_o have_v the_o same_o god_n the_o same_o saviour_n the_o same_o spirit_n the_o same_o faith_n baptism_n and_o hope_n and_o so_o be_v of_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v all_o the_o union_n predicate_v by_o st._n paul_n eph._n 4._o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o they_o have_v also_o the_o same_o scripture_n the_o same_o rule_n of_o prayer_n and_o practice_n the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o decalogue_n and_o precept_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o the_o same_o creed_n the_o same_o love_n the_o same_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n praise_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n day_n for_o holy_a communion_n pastor_n of_o the_o same_o order_n and_o have_v no_o other_o diversity_n in_o such_o thing_n than_o st._n paul_n tell_v we_o be_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 12._o be_v this_o no_o communion_n w._n j._n do_v your_o minister_n first_o take_v either_o mission_n or_o jurisdiction_n to_o preach_v from_o any_o of_o their_o 4._o bishop_n or_o patriarch_n do_v they_o take_v the_o prescription_n of_o their_o liturgy_n discipline_n or_o hierarchy_n from_o they_o do_v they_o upon_o occasion_n join_v in_o prayer_n sacrament_n or_o sacrifice_n with_o they_o r._n b._n 1._o do_v we_o hold_v communion_n with_o none_o that_o we_o take_v not_o mission_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o what_o absurdity_n do_v you_o thrust_v upon_o we_o do_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n corinth_n galatia_n philippi_n colosse_n etc._n etc._n hold_v no_o communion_n in_o scripture-time_n unless_o they_o have_v mission_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o each_o other_o must_v the_o greek_n and_o armenian_n have_v mission_n &c_n &c_n from_o we_o if_o not_o why_o must_v we_o have_v it_o from_o they_o your_o church_n receive_v no_o mission_n or_o jurisdiction_n from_o other_o have_v you_o therefore_o no_o communion_n with_o they_o your_o language_n favour_v of_o so_o much_o tyranny_n and_o pride_n as_o will_v tempt_v man_n indeed_o to_o take_v you_o for_o anti-christian_n as_o if_o subjection_n to_o you_o and_o communion_n with_o you_o be_v all_o one_o or_o you_o will_v have_v communion_n with_o no_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n b●…n_o the_o relation_n of_o servant_n or_o subject_n to_o you_o 2._o when_o we_o have_v qualification_n election_n and_o where_o it_o may_v be_v have_v due_a ordination_n we_o know_v of_o no_o other_o mission_n necessary_a beside_o god_n own_o word_n which_o charge_v christ_n minister_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n etc._n etc._n god_n charge_v all_o minister_n to_o preach_v be_v their_o mission_n when_o they_o be_v minister_n prince_n leave_v and_o people_n consent_n do_v give_v they_o their_o opportunity_n and_o for_o
jurisdiction_n we_o need_v and_o desire_v none_o but_o a_o ministerial_a power_n of_o guide_a soul_n towards_o heaven_n by_o god_n word_n preach_v and_o apply_v and_o he_o that_o ordain_v a_o minister_n thereby_o give_v he_o all_o the_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o his_o office_n if_o a_o man_n be_v license_v a_o physician_n must_v he_o have_v also_o mission_n and_o jurisdiction_n give_v he_o after_o before_o he_o may_v practise_v 3._o how_o can_v we_o take_v ordination_n mission_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o man_n on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o world_n what_o need_v we_o go_v so_o far_o for_o it_o when_o the_o gospel_n be_v near_o we_o which_o tell_v we_o how_o god_n will_v have_v minister_n more_o easy_o call_v than_o so_o 4._o and_o as_o for_o the_o prescript_n of_o our_o liturgy_n discipline_n and_o hierarchy_n that_o be_v one_o of_o the_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o you_o must_v you_o needs_o have_v a_o liturgy_n discipline_n and_o hierarchy_n of_o man_n form_v so_o you_o have_v but_o we_o can_v live_v in_o christian_a communion_n with_o so_o much_o as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o his_o spirit_n have_v prescribe_v we_o be_v there_o no_o communion_n to_o be_v have_v with_o any_o church_n but_o that_o which_o have_v arrive_v at_o that_o height_n of_o pride_n as_o to_o make_v liturgy_n discipline_n and_o hierarchy_n for_o all_o the_o chrstian_a world_n and_o to_o suffer_v none_o to_o speak_v public_o to_o god_n in_o any_o word_n but_o those_o which_o they_o write_v down_o for_o they_o to_o read_v to_o god_n we_o make_v no_o such_o law_n to_o any_o other_o church_n in_o the_o world_n nor_o do_v we_o receive_v any_o such_o law_n from_o any_o and_o yet_o we_o have_v communion_n with_o they_o fraternal_a and_o not_o subjective_a communion_n there_o be_v one_o lawgiver_n who_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o to_o destroy_v who_o be_v you_o that_o make_v law_n for_o another_o servant_n and_o judge_v they_o have_v the_o church_n no_o communion_n for_o the_o first_o 400_o year_n when_o no_o liturgy_n be_v impose_v or_o when_o the_o first_o law_n make_v hereabout_o be_v but_o that_o no_o one_o shall_v use_v a_o form_n of_o prayer_n till_o he_o have_v show_v it_o to_o the_o synod_n no_o nor_o when_o gregory_n and_o ambrose_n liturgy_n be_v strive_v for_o pre-eminence_n have_v the_o church_n at_o neocesaria_n no_o communion_n with_o that_o at_o caesarea_n because_o they_o have_v so_o different_a liturgy_n as_o their_o quarrel_n against_o basil_n intimate_v and_o when_o every_o bishop_n use_v what_o liturgy_n he_o please_v in_o his_o own_o congregation_n be_v there_o then_o no_o communion_n between_o the_o church_n we_o refuse_v not_o any_o meet_a liturgy_n that_o be_v find_v needful_a to_o our_o concord_n but_o true_o for_o hierarchy_n and_o species_n or_o form_n of_o church_n and_o the_o substantial_o of_o discipline_n we_o earnest_o wish_v that_o no_o church_n have_v any_o but_o what_o god_n have_v himself_o prescribe_v to_o they_o 5._o but_o how_o shall_v we_o join_v with_o man_n many_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o mile_n off_o we_o in_o word_n and_o sacrament_n otherwise_o than_o by_o use_v those_o of_o the_o same_o species_n we_o do_v not_o local_o hold_v such_o communion_n with_o the_o next_o parish_n to_o we_o nor_o with_o many_o in_o the_o world_n for_o we_o can_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o much_o less_o can_v we_o be_v every_o lord_n day_n in_o every_o assembly_n in_o ethiopia_n and_o armenia_n as_o for_o sacrifice_n we_o know_v of_o none_o acceptable_a but_o the_o commemmoration_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n once_o offer_v for_o sin_n and_o the_o offering_n of_o ourselves_o and_o our_o thanksgiving_n praise_n and_o other_o duty_n to_o god_n and_o why_o you_o distinguish_v the_o first_o from_o sacrament_n i_o know_v not_o w._n j._n a●…d_n do_v they_o profess_v the_o same_o faith_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o those_o the_o very_a same_o 5._o wherein_o they_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n r._n b._n 1._o ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la it_o may_v suffice_v to_o say_v to_o you_o that_o explicit_o or_o implicit_o they_o do_v 2._o but_o i_o better_o answer_v you_o we_o profess_v the_o same_o faith_n in_o all_o point_v essential_a to_o christianity_n and_o in_o abundance_n more_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o before_o that_o we_o agree_v in_o all_o the_o old_a creed_n and_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n 3._o but_o do_v you_o papist_n agree_v in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n no_o not_o by_o a_o thousand_o for_o all_o be_v of_o faith_n which_o god_n have_v intelligible_o reveal_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v believe_v but_o there_o be_v above_o a_o thousand_o intelligible_a text_n of_o scripture_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o which_o your_o commentator_n differ_v if_o all_o christian_n agree_v in_o all_o that_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la than_o all_o christian_n full_o understand_v every_o intelligible_a word_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o then_o every_o woman_n and_o rustic_a be_v as_o wise_a in_o divinity_n as_o the_o great_a doctor_n yea_o far_o be_v the_o doctor_n from_o such_o wisdom_n w._n j._n if_o so_o they_o may_v as_o well_o be_v say_v not_o to_o have_v separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o 6._o the_o roman_a church_n r._n b._n some_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o we_o do_v not_o separate_v from_o you_o but_o you_o from_o we_o but_o i_o must_v say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v consider_v either_o material_o as_o christian_n and_o a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o we_o neither_o do_v nor_o do_v separate_v from_o you_o or_o else_o formal_o as_o p●…pal_a and_o so_o we_o renounce_v you_o and_o all_o communion_n with_o you_o as_o be_v no_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o sect_n that_o treasonable_o usurp_v his_o prerogative_n the_o pars_fw-la imperans_fw-la specifi_v or_o inform_v the_o society_n christ_n only_o be_v the_o universal_a head_n of_o all_o christian_n as_o such_o and_o of_o all_o the_o church_n with_o which_o we_o profess_v concord_n and_o communion_n in_o this_o head_n greek_o armenian_n ethiopian_n and_o protestant_n unite_v but_o the_o pope_n false_o pretend_v to_o be_v christ_n vicar-general_n be_v take_v for_o the_o universal_a head_n by_o the_o papist_n and_o in_o renounce_v this_o head_n we_o renounce_v no_o other_o church_n but_o you_o r._n b._n not_o from_o you_o as_o christian_n but_o scandalous_a offender_n who_o we_o be_v command_v to_o avoid_v we_o separate_v not_o from_o any_o but_o as_o they_o separate_v from_o christ._n w._n j._n 1._o no_o sure_a for_o if_o you_o do_v you_o must_v be_v jew_n turk_n or_o infidel_n 2._o be_v there_o 7._o no_o more_o in_o it_o do_v not_o the_o primitive_a person_n who_o begin_v your_o breach_n and_o party_n owe_v subjection_n to_o their_o respective_a ecclesiastical_a superior_n diocesan_n and_o pastor_n r._n b._n no_o none_o at_o all_o as_o they_o be_v papal_a that_o be_v the_o subordinate_a minister_n of_o the_o usurp_a universal_a bishop_n w._n j._n and_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o a_o subject_a to_o subtract_v himself_o from_o the_o obedience_n of_o a_o lawful_a pastor_n because_o he_o be_v a_o scandalous_a offender_n r._n b._n yes_o if_o his_o offence_n be_v a_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o take_v on_o he_o a_o false_a office_n by_o usurpation_n or_o if_o he_o remain_v lawful_a quoad_fw-la hoc_fw-la as_o christian_n and_o add_v a_o treasonable_a addition_n we_o must_v have_v no_o communion_n with_o he_o at_o least_o in_o that_o unlawful_a part_n w._n j._n if_o you_o say_v he_o remain_v not_o in_o his_o former_a power_n you_o contradict_v our_o saviour_n command_v 8._o obedience_n to_o the_o scandalous_a pharisee_n etc._n etc._n r._n b._n 1._o the_o pharisee_n set_v not_o up_o a_o new_a usurp_a office_n of_o head-ship_n constitutive_a pretend_o to_o the_o universal_a visible_a church_n but_o only_o abuse_v a_o lawful_a office_n that_o god_n have_v make_v 2._o yet_o christ_n require_v obedience_n to_o they_o no_o far_o than_o as_o they_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n and_o deliver_v the_o law_n but_o warn_v man_n to_o renounce_v they_o as_o corrupter_n and_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o their_o doctrine_n 3._o and_o this_o much_o be_v but_o till_o they_o show_v themselves_o uncurable_a and_o he_o set_v up_o new_a officer_n over_o his_o church_n and_o then_o all_o man_n be_v to_o forsake_v the_o pharisee_n government_n w._n j._n you_o destroy_v all_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o open_v a_o way_n to_o tread_v under_o foot_n all_o temporal_a authority_n if_o you_o hold_v these_o offence_n deprive_v he_o of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a power_n why_o not_o so_o of_o 9_o king_n and_o magistrate_n and_o parent_n and_o then_o you_o have_v spin_v a_o fair_a thread_n etc._n etc._n r._n b._n confusion_n
which_o we_o charge_v they_o with_o in_o europe_n and_o yet_o the_o papist_n so_o charge_v they_o still_o that_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v reason_n for_o condemn_v they_o fear_v that_o their_o non-subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n will_v not_o seem_v enough_o with_o impartial_a man_n and_o as_o to_o the_o great_a confidence_n that_o they_o seem_v to_o place_v in_o their_o succession_n to_o st._n peter_n 6._o and_o christ_n word_n to_o he_o on_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o to_o thou_o i_o give_v the_o key_n etc._n etc._n and_o feed_v my_o sheep_n i_o have_v oft_o answer_v it_o more_o full_o than_o be_v fit_a again_o to_o recite_v but_o these_o few_o hint_n i_o will_v commend_v to_o the_o reader_n 1._o that_o we_o affirm_v that_o peter_n be_v among_o they_o as_o a_o foreman_n of_o a_o jury_n and_o no_o more_o and_o so_o christ_n speak_v to_o the_o rest_n in_o speak_v to_o he_o and_o the_o same_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o rest_n the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o be_v build_v on_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n cornerstone_n is_n not_o this_o as_o much_o as_o be_v say_v of_o st._n peter_n christ_n give_v they_o all_o the_o power_n of_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n bind_v and_o lose_v which_o be_v the_o key_n which_o he_o give_v to_o peter_n and_o they_o be_v all_o send_v forth_o to_o feed_v christ_n sheep_n now_o the_o father_n give_v as_o high_a title_n oft_o to_o other_o as_o to_o the_o pope_n yea_o and_o to_o peter_n see_v what_o i_o have_v cite_v in_o my_o key_n for_o catholic_n pag._n 175._o 176._o and_o what_o gataker_n have_v cite_v out_o of_o dionysius_n tertullian_n basil_n jerome_n augustine_n theodoret_n gildas_n nicephorus_n etc._n etc._n cin._n 395._o 396._o 2._o peter_n never_o exercise_v any_o authority_n over_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o call_v they_o not_o govern_v they_o not_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o paul_n reprove_v he_o gal._n 2._o but_o none_o of_o his_o reprove_v they_o schism_n be_v among_o they_o and_o great_o lament_v they_o be_v never_o direct_v to_o unite_v in_o peter_n as_o the_o way_n to_o concord_n nor_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o he_o to_o end_v they_o nay_o when_o the_o overvaluers_a of_o peter_n make_v one_o party_n in_o the_o schism_n among_o the_o corinthian_n paul_n seek_v to_o take_v they_o off_o that_o way_n and_o set_v peter_n in_o the_o same_o rank_n with_o himself_o and_o apollo_n as_o minister_n only_o by_o who_o they_o believe_v call_v they_o carnal_a for_o say_v i_o be_o of_o cephas_n never_o call_v they_o to_o unite_v in_o he_o as_o the_o head_n of_o all_o and_o have_v this_o be_v necessary_a what_o have_v this_o be_v but_o to_o betray_v the_o church_n 3._o the_o apostle_n be_v never_o proper_o bishop_n but_o of_o a_o high_a rank_n bishop_n be_v the_o fix_a overseer_n of_o particular_a church_n and_o no_o one_o have_v many_o but_o apostle_n only_o plant_v they_o and_o govern_v they_o for_o their_o confirmation_n and_o so_o pass_v on_o from_o one_o to_o another_o and_o have_v care_n of_o many_o such_o at_o once_o if_o any_o one_o church_n may_v pretend_v superiority_n by_o virtue_n of_o succession_n it_o will_v be_v jerusalem_n and_o next_o that_o ephesus_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o john_n the_o belove_a disciple_n be_v as_o bishop_n and_o which_o have_v continue_v to_o this_o day_n 4._o the_o apostle_n as_o such_o have_v no_o successor_n nor_o as_o bishop_n in_o any_o distinct_a seat_n the_o same_o christ_n that_o call_v peter_n call_v the_o rest_n and_o call_v especial_o the_o belove_a disciple_n to_o who_o on_o the_o cross_n he_o commend_v his_o mother_n when_o peter_n have_v deny_v he_o and_o he_o promise_v to_o be_v with_o they_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o no_o bishop_n on_o earth_n ever_o pretend_v to_o superiority_n over_o any_o other_o church_n as_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o other_o eleven_o apostle_n where_o be_v those_o seat_n or_o where_o ever_o be_v they_o if_o the_o apostle_n successor_n must_v rule_v the_o church_n as_o such_o tell_v we_o which_o be_v the_o other_o eleven_o and_o which_o be_v their_o diocese_n and_o of_o what_o extent_n nay_o it_o be_v stone_n considerable_a that_o even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o domination_n there_o be_v but_o five_o patriarchates_n ever_o set_v up_o and_o not_o twelve_o and_o not_o one_o of_o those_o claim_v power_n by_o virtue_n of_o succession_n from_o any_o apostle_n constantinople_n never_o pretend_v to_o it_o alexandria_n claim_v the_o honour_n of_o succession_n only_o from_o st._n mark_n who_o be_v no_o apostle_n and_o jerusalem_n from_o james_n who_o dr._n hammond_n labour_v to_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v none_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o a_o kinsman_n of_o jesus_n only_a antioch_n and_o rome_n claim_v succession_n from_o peter_n and_o antioch_n as_o his_o first_o seat_n but_o they_o do_v on_o that_o single_a account_n claim_v power_n then_o over_o other_o church_n and_o see_v the_o church_n be_v build_v on_o the_o foundation_n of_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o that_o all_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 12._o be_v mention_v equal_o as_o the_o noble_a foundation_n member_n or_o pillar_n and_o the_o people_n chide_v sharp_o by_o paul_n for_o make_v cephas_n a_o head_n what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o peter_n only_o have_v perpetual_a successor_n fix_v to_o a_o certain_a city_n and_o that_o no_o other_o of_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v any_o such_o what_o word_n of_o god_n will_v prove_v that_o peter_n have_v leave_v his_o power_n at_o rome_n and_o no_o other_o apostle_n no_o not_o one_o have_v leave_v they_o to_o any_o place_n or_o person_n on_o earth_n yea_o and_o that_o he_o leave_v it_o more_o to_o rome_n than_o to_o antioch_n when_o antioch_n claim_v the_o first_o succession_n from_o he_o and_o rome_n but_o the_o second_o and_o when_o nilus_n and_o other_o have_v say_v so_o much_o to_o make_v it_o probable_a that_o peter_n never_o be_v at_o rome_n and_o when_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o paul_n be_v there_o and_o those_o old_a father_n that_o from_o some_o word_n of_o one_o of_o eusebius_n his_o doubtful_a author_n do_v say_v that_o peter_n be_v at_o rome_n and_o bishop_n there_o do_v also_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o episcopal_a seat_n of_o paul_n and_o when_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o apostle_n be_v anywhere_o a_o bishop_n formaliter_fw-la but_o only_a eminenter_fw-la as_o be_v not_o fix_v nor_o fix_v their_o power_n to_o any_o seat_n and_o dr._n hammond_n give_v very_o considerable_a conjecture_n that_o if_o peter_n and_o paul_n be_v both_o at_o rome_n they_o have_v divers_a church_n there_o paul_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o uncircumcision_n and_o peter_n of_o the_o circumcision_n only_o from_o whence_o we_o may_v see_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o his_o apostle_n judge_v that_o there_o may_v be_v more_o church_n and_o bishop_n in_o one_o city_n than_o one_o much_o more_o over_o a_o thousand_o parish_n though_o as_o the_o contrary_a spirit_n prevail_v the_o contrary_a interest_n and_o opinion_n prevail_v with_o it_o these_o thing_n premise_v the_o reader_n must_v know_v that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n between_o 7._o mr._n terret_n alias_o mr._n johnson_n and_o i_o be_v this_o find_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o possession_n of_o abundance_n of_o error_n and_o vanity_n he_o will_v not_o only_o persuade_v we_o that_o they_o be_v of_o god_n and_o have_v ever_o be_v the_o same_o because_o it_o be_v so_o with_o they_o now_o but_o also_o conclude_v that_o these_o carbuncle_n be_v essential_a to_o christianity_n and_o the_o church_n and_o that_o we_o can_v prove_v that_o we_o be_v a_o church_n and_o christian_n unless_o we_o prove_v that_o we_o have_v have_v from_o the_o apostle_n a_o continue_a succession_n of_o their_o error_n as_o if_o a_o man_n can_v not_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o man_n unless_o all_o his_o ancestor_n from_o adam_n have_v the_o french-pox_n or_o the_o leprosy_n on_o the_o contrary_n i_o maintain_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v his_o body_n be_v essentiate_v by_o true_a consent_n to_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n which_o be_v our_o christen_n and_o integrate_v by_o all_o the_o additional_a degree_n that_o this_o covenant_n be_v expound_v in_o the_o creed_n lord_n prayer_n and_o christian_a decalogue_n the_o lord_n supper_n be_v but_o the_o same_o covenant_n celebrate_v by_o other_o sign_n not_o for_o essence_n but_o confirmation_n that_o all_o that_o consent_n to_o the_o celebrate_v baptismal_a covenant_n hearty_o be_v member_n of_o the_o invisible_a church_n and_o all_o that_o profess_v consent_n in_o sincerity_n or_o hypocrisy_n be_v visible_a member_n
coram_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v no_o other_o head_n than_o christ_n himself_o no_o vicarious_a universal_a head_n pope_n nor_o council_n that_o the_o protestant_n profess_v themselves_o member_n of_o no_o other_o universal_a church_n but_o that_o of_o which_o christ_n only_o be_v the_o head_n and_o all_o christian_n at_o least_o not_o cast_v out_o be_v member_n that_o this_o christian_a church_n have_v be_v visible_a to_o god_n by_o real_a consent_n and_o visible_a to_o man_n by_o profess_a consent_n from_o the_o first_o be_v of_o it_o to_o this_o day_n and_o when_o they_o ask_v we_o where_o be_v your_o church_n before_o luther_n we_o say_v where_o there_o be_v christian_n before_o luther_n our_o religion_n be_v nothing_o but_o simple_a christianity_n we_o be_v o●…_n no_o catholic_n church_n but_o the_o universality_n of_o christian_n we_o know_v no_o other_o but_o lament_v that_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o clergy_n grow_v up_o from_o parochial_a to_o diocesan_n and_o from_o diocesan_n to_o metropolitical_n and_o patriarchal_a and_o thence_o to_o papal_a have_v invent_v any_o other_o and_o that_o the_o serpent_n that_o tempt_v eve_n have_v draw_v they_o from_o the_o christian_a simplicity_n they_o deny_v not_o the_o successive_a visibility_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o christian_a church_n we_o desire_v no_o more_o we_o own_v we_o know_v no_o other_o religion_n and_o no_o other_o church_n but_o the_o roman_a artifice_n here_o come_v in_o and_o when_o their_o humane_a universal_a head_n have_v make_v the_o grand_a schism_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n hence_o they_o have_v learn_v to_o 8._o make_v christian_n of_o no_o christian_n and_o no_o christian_n of_o christian_n as_o pride_n and_o ignorance_n serve_v this_o usurp_a interest_n please_v their_o doctor_n be_v not_o agree_v whether_o any_o more_o be_v necessary_a explicit_o to_o be_v believe_v to_o salvation_n than_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o our_o work_n shall_v be_v reward_v without_o believe_v a_o word_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o gospel_n and_o whether_o they_o that_o believe_v not_o in_o christ_n be_v christian_n or_o whether_o be_v no_o christian_n yet_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o the_o great_a part_n be_v here_o on_o the_o wide_a latitudinarian_a side_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o fr._n s._n clara_n problem_n deus_fw-la nat._n grat._n and_o in_o the_o word_n of_o this_o w._n i._n before_o answer_v and_o yet_o these_o charitable_a man_n conclude_v that_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a world_n abassine_n copty_v syrian_n jacobite_n georgian_n armenian_n greek_n moscovite_n protestant_n be_v all_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n though_o their_o own_o friar_n that_o have_v live_v among_o some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o east_n profess_v that_o they_o be_v no_o heretic_n and_o be_v better_a man_n than_o the_o papist_n be_v and_o none_o worse_o of_o life_n than_o the_o roman_a party_n and_o whence_o be_v this_o strange_a difference_n why_o it_o be_v because_o that_o these_o be_v none_o of_o they_o subject_n to_o the_o pope_n which_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o those_o be_v that_o believe_v only_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o a_o reward_n but_o how_o be_v this_o their_o only_a explicit_a faith_n if_o they_o must_v also_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o vice-christ_n and_o some_o of_o they_o tell_v you_o further_o that_o he_o that_o shall_v so_o far_o believe_v his_o ghostly_a father_n the_o priest_n sup_n as_o to_o hold_v that_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o love_n god_n because_o the_o priest_n tell_v he_o so_o be_v not_o only_o excusable_a but_o he_o merit_v by_o it_o so_o much_o more_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v it_o to_o love_v the_o priest_n than_o to_o love_v god_n and_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o their_o own_o leader_n confess_v that_o it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v peter_n successor_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o by_o revelation_n that_o the_o church-governor_n 9_o must_v be_v know_v as_o i_o have_v show_v out_o of_o ri._n smyth_n bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o of_o england_n and_o in_o the_o fore-confuted_n write_n of_o w._n i_o the_o thing_n that_o i_o maintain_v be_v i._o that_o the_o protestant_n religion_n and_o church_n be_v only_o the_o christian_n as_o such_o have_v a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n as_o such_o which_o the_o papist_n 10._o deny_v not_o ii_o that_o the_o papal_a church_n as_o such_o can_v prove_v its_o constant_a visibility_n and_o succession_n nay_o though_o it_o be_v their_o part_n to_o prove_v it_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o prove_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v a_o novelty_n 2._o that_o it_o have_v be_v often_o and_o notorious_o interrupt_v and_o their_o papacy_n have_v not_o have_v any_o continue_a succession_n of_o man_n true_o pope_n by_o their_o own_o law_n and_o rule_n and_o in_o their_o own_o account_n chap._n i._n the_o confutation_n of_o w._n j_n reply_n the_o first_o regardable_a passage_n in_o w._n i_n reply_n be_v p._n 53_o 54._o where_o he_o maintain_v that_o whatsoever_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n institution_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o 1_o church_n and_o nothing_o mere_o integral_v or_o accident_n because_o i_o have_v omit_v the_o word_n ever_o in_o the_o confutation_n he_o take_v that_o as_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o all_o that_o i_o say_v against_o he_o and_o challenge_v i_o still_o to_o give_v a_o instance_n of_o any_o institution_n not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o it_o but_o reader_n be_v perpetuity_n any_o proof_n of_o a_o essential_a he_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o as_o other_o society_n so_o the_o church_n have_v accident_n but_o he_o faith_n no_o accident_n institute_v have_v be_v 2._o ever_o in_o it_o it_o may_v be_v we_o shall_v have_v a_o quibble_n here_o upon_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n ever_o whether_o it_o be_v 3_o from_o everlasting_a or_o from_o the_o creation_n or_o before_o christ_n incarnation_n or_o before_o his_o resurrection_n or_o the_o form_n of_o his_o church_n by_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o apostle_n but_o in_o consistency_n with_o his_o own_o cause_n which_o be_v that_o the_o papacy_n have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n he_o must_v take_v up_o with_o this_o last_o sense_n well_o let_v we_o see_v what_o work_n these_o man_n make_v and_o how_o they_o be_v take_v in_o the_o trap_n that_o they_o lie_v for_o other_o but_o first_o he_o shall_v have_v some_o confute_v instance_n 4._o 1._o every_o word_n of_o christ_n own_o doctrine_n and_o speech_n record_v in_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n and_o institute_v by_o christ_n but_o every_o word_n of_o christ_n own_o doctrine_n and_o speech_n record_v in_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n therefore_o every_o thing_n institute_v by_o christ_n that_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o it_o if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o all_o write_v till_o after_o some_o year_n it_o be_v yet_o all_o in_o the_o church_n even_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o they_o that_o write_v it_o and_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o in_o their_o preach_n as_o be_o like_a if_o you_o say_v that_o all_o this_o be_v essential_a alas_o then_o if_o false_a copy_n have_v lose_v we_o a_o word_n the_o church_n be_v lose_v and_o those_o church_n that_o receive_v not_o some_o word_n be_v unchurch_v that_o christ_n suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n creed_n and_o yet_o the_o name_n of_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o christianity_n 2._o the_o administer_a the_o lord_n supper_n in_o both_o kind_n bread_n and_o wine_n have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n and_o of_o christ_n own_o institution_n be_v this_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n perhaps_o some_o will_v have_v the_o impudence_n to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o now_o in_o it_o because_o the_o pope_n have_v cast_v it_o out_o but_o it_o be_v now_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o we_o may_v as_o well_o say_v the_o papacy_n be_v not_o now_o in_o because_o other_o church_n do_v reject_v it_o 3._o prayer_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n and_o of_o christ_n institution_n and_o yet_o you_o think_v it_o not_o essential_a to_o it_o 4._o the_o use_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n as_o such_o thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o any_o grave_a image_n etc._n etc._n be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o you_o have_v leave_v it_o out_o of_o the_o decalogue_n 5._o the_o office_n of_o deacon_n have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n since_o their_o institution_n act._n 6._o yet_o few_o think_v they_o essential_a to_o the_o
church_n 6._o christ_n himself_o wash_v his_o apostle_n foot_n and_o teach_v they_o to_o do_v the_o like_a which_o be_v use_v in_o those_o hot_a country_n where_o it_o be_v a_o needful_a act_n of_o ministry_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n 7._o baptism_n from_o the_o beginning_n as_o institute_v by_o christ_n be_v administer_v by_o dip_v over_o head_n in_o water_n but_o you_o take_v not_o that_o to_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n 8._o the_o lord_n day_n be_v holy_a observation_n as_o institute_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v ever_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o many_o of_o your_o doctor_n do_v equal_a it_o with_o other_o holy_a day_n and_o make_v it_o not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n 9_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n distinguish_v essential_o from_o integral_n and_o accident_n in_o their_o time_n therefore_o they_o be_v still_o to_o be_v distinguish_v and_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a society_n that_o have_v not_o ever_o have_v integral_n and_o accident_n christ_n institute_v baptism_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v thus_o the_o essential_o yet_o he_o say_v teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o but_o all_o those_o be_v not_o essential_o for_o christ_n himself_o distinguish_v tything_n mint_n annise_v and_o cummin_n from_o the_o great_a thing_n of_o the_o law_n and_o yet_o say_v these_o aught_o you_o to_o have_v do_v and_o st._n paul_n say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o meat_n and_o drink_n but_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o more_o than_o these_o be_v then_o a_o duty_n all_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o order_n and_o yet_o who_o ever_o say_v but_o you_o that_o all_o this_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n christ_n by_o his_o apostle_n institute_v that_o collection_n for_o the_o poor_a shall_v be_v make_v on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n yet_o be_v not_o that_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n 10._o affliction_n be_v accident_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o christ_n appointment_n and_o have_v be_v ever_o there_o and_o yet_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o it_o 11._o all_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o gift_n and_o grace_n have_v be_v of_o christ_n and_o ever_o in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o it_o that_o christian_n be_v just_a as_o many_o as_o they_o have_v be_v or_o of_o such_o measure_n of_o gift_n and_o grace_n for_o even_o perfection_n be_v a_o duty_n 12._o few_o of_o your_o own_o do_v think_v that_o extreme_a unction_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o if_o it_o cease_v it_o will_v be_v no_o church_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o many_o other_o thing_n but_o see_v how_o these_o man_n unchurch_n themselves_o for_o if_o this_o be_v true_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v no_o true_a church_n for_o it_o have_v cast_v off_o that_o which_o they_o call_v essential_a be_v it_o 5._o but_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o public_a prayer_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n the_o change_n have_v unchurch_v they_o these_o consequent_n fall_v on_o they_o that_o will_v unchurch_n most_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n but_o page_n 55_o 56._o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o every_o such_o thing_n must_v be_v necessary_o believe_v 6._o by_o every_o member_n no_o not_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n but_o to_o such_o only_a to_o who_o they_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v answ._n 1._o and_o yet_o these_o man_n tell_v our_o people_n to_o affright_v they_o that_o they_o can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o their_o church_n or_o in_o our_o religion_n and_o now_o it_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 2._o but_o who_o can_v ever_o know_v what_o will_v pass_v for_o a_o sufficient_a propound_v while_o twenty_o degree_n of_o man_n capacity_n make_v twenty_o degree_n of_o proposal_n respective_o sufficient_a what_o man_n of_o reason_n can_v believe_v that_o such_o self-confuting_a dispute_n as_o you_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o sure_o the_o christian_a empire_n of_o abassia_n than_o have_v no_o sufficient_a proposal_n when_o but_o late_o your_o emissary_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o never_o hear_v from_o the_o pope_n till_o now_o because_o he_o can_v not_o have_v access_n or_o send_v to_o they_o q._n whether_o that_o empire_n be_v true_a christian_n through_o so_o many_o age_n see_v they_o receive_v not_o the_o scripture_n on_o the_o authoritative_a proposal_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o papal_a church_n and_o yet_o confess_o be_v never_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 3._o by_o this_o account_n all_o christian_n essential_o differ_v from_o each_o other_o in_o their_o religion_n and_o christianity_n be_v a_o word_n of_o such_o monstrous_a ambiguity_n that_o it_o signify_v as_o many_o several_a religion_n as_o there_o be_v person_n in_o the_o world_n who_o divers_a capacity_n make_v diversity_n of_o proposal_n become_v necessary_a or_o sufficient_a to_o they_o but_o he_o say_v that_o these_o be_v all_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n though_o not_o to_o the_o several_a member_n more_o difficulty_n still_o 1._o how_o shall_v we_o ever_o know_v the_o church_n this_o way_n if_o the_o belief_n 7._o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v essential_a to_o some_o and_o only_o to_o some_o how_o many_o must_v they_o be_v that_o so_o believe_v will_v one_o serve_v or_o one_o thousand_o to_o make_v all_o the_o rest_n church-member_n that_o believe_v it_o not_o or_o how_o many_o will_v this_o leven_n extend_v to_o why_o then_o may_v not_o the_o belief_n of_o italy_n prove_v all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o church_n 2._o how_o come_v another_o man_n belief_n to_o be_v of_o such_o save_a use_n to_o other_o if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o belief_n but_o their_o own_o who_o believe_v not_o than_o all_o the_o world_n be_v of_o your_o church_n that_o want_v sufficient_a proposal_n and_o unbeliever_n be_v christian_n or_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n so_o be_v it_o they_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n and_o so_o all_o the_o unknown_a world_n and_o american_n and_o most_o of_o the_o heathen_n be_v of_o your_o christian_a church_n and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o pope_n be_v save_v then_o without_o believe_v his_o own_o supremacy_n i_o very_o think_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o pope_n of_o twenty_o that_o believe_v his_o own_o infallibility_n doubtless_o some_o illiterate_a or_o ill-bred_a pope_n have_v have_v but_o very_o defective_a proposal_n of_o their_o own_o supremacy_n it_o be_v rather_o affirm_v by_o flattery_n than_o ever_o prove_v to_o they_o pag._n 57_o have_v first_o call_v for_o sense_n in_o my_o word_n because_o the_o printer_n have_v put_v as_o for_o be_v he_o turn_v his_o former_a assertion_n whatever_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n institution_n 8._o be_v essential_a to_o it_o into_o another_o because_o christ_n have_v institute_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v essential_a and_o this_o yet_o more_o plain_o shame_v the_o asserte_a than_o the_o former_a for_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o christ_n have_v institute_v 1._o that_o every_o word_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n shall_v be_v ever_o after_o its_o existence_n in_o the_o church_n 2._o and_o that_o no_o minister_n shall_v preach_v any_o thing_n but_o truth_n in_o the_o church_n 3._o and_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v commit_v any_o sin_n at_o all_o 4._o and_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v deliver_v in_o both_o kind_n in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n till_o he_o come_v etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o sure_a all_o this_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n pag_n 58._o he_o will_v persuade_v i_o that_o i_o miscite_fw-la fr._n sta._n clara_n and_o that_o he_o say_v not_o that_o infidel_n may_v be_v save_v but_o only_o those_o that_o have_v not_o a_o explicit_a faith_n in_o christ_n through_o invincible_a ignorance_n and_o that_o he_o say_v not_o that_o it_o be_v most_o of_o the_o doctor_n opinion_n nor_o that_o any_o may_v be_v save_v who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o my_o friend_n will_v be_v sorry_a to_o see_v i_o so_o defective_a in_o my_o citation_n and_o he_o hope_v i_o will_v mend_v it_o in_o the_o next_o ans._n that_o i_o will_v if_o plain_a word_n transcribe_v be_v any_o amend_v but_o i_o can_v amend_v your_o deceitful_a deal_n 1._o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o sta._n clara_n say_v they_o may_v be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o such_o be_v in_o your_o church_n and_o so_o may_v be_v save_v who_o indeed_o be_v no_o
receive_v by_o the_o proposal_n of_o the_o papal_a church_n as_o such_o whereas_o now_o we_o perceive_v that_o it_o may_v be_v receive_v from_o the_o church_n though_o they_o know_v it_o not_o to_o be_v papal_a and_o we_o think_v it_o must_v have_v be_v receive_v as_o from_o a_o general_n council_n or_o the_o church_n universal_a but_o it_o seem_v here_o it_o be_v needful_a but_o that_o it_o be_v from_o their_o particular_a pastor_n 4._o by_o this_o it_o seem_v that_o there_o be_v other_o pastor_n that_o must_v be_v believe_v receive_v and_o obey_v before_o the_o pope_n and_o subjection_n to_o they_o be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n and_o churchmembership_n when_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v of_o no_o such_o necessity_n how_o the_o pope_n will_v take_v this_o we_o know_v not_o but_o 5._o it_o leave_v we_o to_o new_a doubt_n as_o hard_o as_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n how_o to_o know_v that_o such_o indeed_o be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n before_o we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n or_o a_o pope_n and_o how_o to_o know_v which_o be_v they_o we_o perceive_v now_o that_o implicit_a faith_n be_v not_o necessary_o the_o believe_a pope_n or_o council_n but_o the_o believe_v those_o that_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n qu._n 1._o but_o can_v we_o know_v that_o christ_n institute_v they_o before_o we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n or_o that_o he_o be_v true_a christ_n q_o 2._o can_v you_o be_v true_a pastor_n without_o derivation_n from_o and_o dependence_n on_o the_o pope_n or_o be_v so_o know_v by_o the_o people_n o_o that_o you_o will_v but_o come_v into_o the_o light_n and_o tell_v we_o how_o and_o then_o q._n 3._o tell_v we_o why_o the_o same_o people_n may_v not_o take_v protestant_a armenian_a abassine_a bishop_n or_o presbyter_n for_o true_a pastor_n by_o the_o same_o proof_n q._n 4._o and_o do_v not_o the_o proof_n or_o knowledge_n that_o man_n be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n without_o know_v that_o they_o have_v ordination_n jurisdiction_n mission_n or_o confirmation_n as_o you_o distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o pope_n or_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o also_o prove_v that_o quoad_fw-la esse_fw-la man_n may_v be_v cur_n true_a pastor_n without_o any_o of_o these_o relation_n to_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o esse_fw-la rei_fw-la be_v presuppose_v to_o the_o proof_n and_o knowledge_n 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o relation_n the_o fundamentum_fw-la enter_v the_o definition_n i_o conclude_v that_o be_v myself_o unfeigned_o and_o earnest_o desirous_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n whether_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o appoint_a church-monarch_n of_o government_n of_o all_o christian_n that_o dwell_v on_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o have_v diligent_o read_v what_o you_o and_o abu●…_n 〈◊〉_d more_o have_v write_v for_o it_o i_o profess_v that_o i_o never_o yet_o hear_v or_o see_v any_o proposal_n of_o it_o nor_o yet_o of_o abundance_n of_o your_o doctrine_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v my_o understanding_n of_o it_o but_o much_o to_o convince_v i_o of_o the_o contrary_n and_o i_o may_v suppose_v this_o to_o be_v the_o case_n of_o most_o who_o need_v as_o clear_a evidence_n as_o i_o and_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v none_o of_o we_o by_o your_o concession_n oblige_v either_o necessitate_v medii_fw-la or_o praecepti_fw-la to_o believe_v you_o or_o to_o be_v your_o subject_n and_o i_o confess_v i_o like_o the_o preach_n of_o these_o man_n who_o labour_n be_v only_o to_o subject_a man_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o their_o lawful_a magistrate_n and_o domestic_a governor_n and_o to_o the_o teaching-conduct_a believe_v of_o those_o that_o speak_v to_o they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n better_a than_o they_o that_o make_v it_o the_o foundation_n of_o their_o religion_n to_o make_v all_o man_n on_o earth_n their_o subject_n and_o yet_o teacher_n we_o acknowledge_v necessary_a to_o our_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v not_o first_o necessary_a to_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v send_v by_o christ_n before_o we_o believe_v in_o christ._n but_o 1._o the_o first_o messenger_n apostle_n do_v at_o once_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o send_v they_o to_o witness_v his_o resurrection_n miracle_n and_o work_n and_o to_o preach_v his_o gospel_n and_o the_o tongue_n miracle_n etc._n etc._n by_o which_o they_o prove_v it_o be_v a_o proof_n of_o both_o at_o once_o but_o principal_o of_o the_o former_a for_o if_o a_o un-called_n preacher_n have_v wrought_v a_o miracle_n it_o will_v have_v prove_v his_o doctrine_n but_o not_o his_o call_v 2._o but_o ordinary_a preacher_n now_o give_v we_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v heretofore_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n the_o doctrine_n self-evidencing_a divinity_n as_o it_o have_v the_o impress_n of_o god_n power_n wisdom_n and_o love_n his_o holiness_n justice_n and_o mercy_n with_o the_o antecedent_n prophecy_n fulfil_v and_o the_o concomitant_a and_o subsequent_a miracle_n and_o the_o continue_a seal_n of_o the_o sanctify_a spirit_n in_o all_o believer_n and_o by_o these_o we_o be_v first_o draw_v by_o the_o inward_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n before_o we_o believe_v that_o he_o send_v these_o man_n to_o be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n yea_o without_o believe_v they_o ofttimes_o to_o be_v our_o pastor_n or_o any_o pastor_n at_o all_o we_o detest_v those_o self-preacher_n that_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o we_o must_v believe_v they_o to_o be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o receive_v they_o before_o we_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o receive_v he_o and_o we_o detest_v that_o false_a doctrine_n that_o say_v that_o a_o layman_n may_v not_o convert_v soul_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o god_n word_n and_o spirit_n may_v not_o by_o his_o open_v that_o word_n win_v soul_n that_o know_v not_o yet_o what_o ministry_n christ_n have_v institute_v to_o my_o instance_n of_o the_o iberian_o convert_v by_o a_o maid_n and_o the_o indian_n by_o frumentius_n 13._o and_o edesius_n he_o answer_v 1._o that_o he_o can_v prove_v the_o papacy_n preach_v to_o they_o as_o well_o as_o i_o can_v justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o or_o any_o other_o parcicular_a point_n of_o our_o doctrine_n 2._o we_o must_v both_o say_v that_o all_o important_a truth_n of_o christianity_n be_v preach_v to_o they_o and_o till_o you_o have_v evince_v this_o of_o the_o supremacy_n to_o be_v none_o of_o those_o it_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v it_o be_v sufficient_o declare_v to_o they_o 3._o explicate_v the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o be_v suppose_v they_o be_v tell_v it_o consist_v of_o pastor_n and_o people_n unite_v and_o that_o they_o must_v obey_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n in_o which_o doctrine_n the_o pope_n be_v implicit_o include_v answ._n 1._o our_o doctrine_n as_o you_o call_v it_o be_v christianity_n and_o i_o can_v prove_v nothing_o preach_v but_o what_o make_v they_o christian_n which_o you_o confess_v may_v be_v without_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 2._o a_o brave_a argument_n all_o important_a truth_n be_v preach_v ergo_fw-la you_o must_v prove_v that_o this_o be_v not_o one_o of_o they_o 1._o all_o important_a truth_n can_v in_o reason_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v preach_v by_o those_o two_o layman_n and_o by_o a_o maid_n all_o essential_a truth_n we_o may_v suppose_v preach_v or_o else_o they_o can_v not_o be_v christian_n we_o hear_v before_o that_o you_o will_v persuade_v we_o that_o every_o truth_n of_o continue_a institution_n be_v not_o only_o important_a but_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n whence_o you_o may_v infer_v in_o your_o way_n that_o the_o maid_n and_o the_o two_o layman_n have_v preach_v every_o such_o truth_n and_o leave_v not_o one_o out_o or_o else_o there_o be_v no_o christian_n and_o church_n 2._o it_o be_v your_o part_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v such_o a_o important_a truth_n and_o not_o i_o to_o prove_v the_o negative_a which_o yet_o i_o have_v oft_o and_o full_o do_v 3._o the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o at_o first_o in_o the_o creed_n as_o the_o old_a copy_n show_v and_o baptism_n be_v administer_v without_o mention_v that_o article_n 4._o if_o hold_v that_o people_n must_v obey_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n will_v serve_v than_o we_o be_v all_o right_a 〈◊〉_d if_o this_o be_v a_o implicit_a belief_n of_o the_o papacy_n we_o be_v all_o papist_n yea_o perhaps_o mahometan_n and_o he●…thens_n be_v papist_n too_o by_o such_o a_o belief_n to_o 〈◊〉_d instance_n from_o act._n 2._o he_o say_v 1._o who_o can_v tell_v whether_o peter_n tell_v they_o not_o of_o his_o suprem●…_n 〈◊〉_d 2._o they_o address_v their_o speech_n first_o
on_o the_o 6_o of_o january_n till_o after_o the_o middle_n of_o chrysostom_n time_n and_o so_o in_o the_o present_a case_n have_v it_o be_v as_o ancient_a as_o they_o pretend_v it_o be_v not_o universal_a 2._o but_o he_o say_v that_o at_o least_o as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n by_o the_o church_n grant_v they_o be_v in_o full_a quiet_a possession_n of_o that_o right_n or_o power_n which_o we_o confess_v be_v lawful_a ans._n no_o such_o matter_n we_o make_v no_o such_o confession_n those_o protestant_n who_o think_v that_o the_o superiority_n of_o patriarch_n be_v lawful_a do_v hold_v that_o it_o be_v by_o humane_a law_n and_o that_o if_o any_o such_o law_n be_v make_v by_o that_o which_o you_o call_v the_o church_n that_o be_v by_o council_n it_o be_v by_o such_o council_n as_o in_o such_o matter_n receive_v their_o power_n from_o the_o emperor_n without_o which_o they_o may_v not_o set_v up_o one_o city_n above_o another_o nor_o distribute_v province_n and_o diocese_n and_o as_o be_v do_v and_o therefore_o that_o while_o the_o imperial_a law_n enforce_v they_o they_o have_v the_o law_n to_o bind_v subject_n to_o obey_v they_o but_o when_o any_o kingdom_n be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o empire_n it_o be_v from_o under_o those_o law_n and_o under_o the_o law_n of_o their_o own_o prince_n and_o the_o former_a decree_n of_o council_n be_v no_o law_n to_o they_o any_o long_o though_o they_o may_v by_o voluntary_a contract_n still_o associate_v with_o foreign_a land_n so_o that_o such_o hold_v 1._o that_o while_o britain_n be_v under_o the_o roman_a empire_n they_o owe_v some_o respect_n or_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n as_o englishman_n do_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n 2._o that_o before_o and_o after_o they_o owe_v he_o no_o more_o obedience_n than_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rheims_n or_o arles_n 3._o that_o when_o the_o saxon_a king_n permit_v the_o first_o english_a bishop_n voluntary_o to_o subject_n themselves_o to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n they_o make_v themselves_o debtor_n of_o all_o lawful_a obedience_n which_o they_o promise_v 4._o that_o when_o the_o saxon_a and_o danish_a king_n command_v their_o subject_n such_o lawful_a obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n they_o owe_v it_o he_o by_o the_o obligation_n of_o their_o sovereign_n law_n 5._o and_o when_o those_o law_n cease_v their_o obligation_n cease_v and_o when_o those_o law_n forbid_v it_o it_o become_v unlawful_a and_o so_o the_o roman_a patriarch_n have_v no_o power_n in_o england_n when_o the_o king_n and_o law_n do_v deny_v it_o he_o or_o cease_v to_o give_v it_o he_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o those_o protestant_n that_o think_v such_o patriarch_n lawful_a the_o other_o that_o think_v they_o a_o sinful_a usurpation_n think_v that_o they_o be_v never_o lawful_a yet_o he_o urge_v we_o with_o what_o conscience_n we_o cease_v to_o obey_v they_o pag._n 74._o he_o say_v prove_v that_o any_o church_n which_o now_o deny_v it_o have_v be_v always_o visible_a and_o 3_o i_o be_o satisfy_v whether_o that_o church_n always_o deny_v it_o or_o no._n ans._n this_o have_v some_o moderation_n in_o it_o 1._o there_o have_v no_o church_n but_o that_o of_o jerusalem_n be_v always_o visible_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n for_o no_o other_o be_v at_o first_o existent_n 2._o and_o that_o be_v not_o visible_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n 3._o this_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o it_o consist_v of_o the_o most_o christian_n there_o now_o deny_v your_o papal_a power_n 4._o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n antioch_n and_o abassia_n now_o deny_v it_o and_o have_v be_v always_o visible_a 5._o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o many_o other_o of_o greek_n that_o now_o deny_v it_o have_v be_v always_o visible_a since_o paul_n time_n and_o constantinople_n since_o the_o first_o plant_n 6._o and_o i_o pray_v you_o note_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v always_o visible_a for_o it_o do_v not_o exist_v till_o some_o year_n after_o that_o at_o jerusalem_n yea_o note_n that_o you_o can_v pretend_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o universal_a bishop_n from_o the_o beginning_n for_o you_o confess_v peter_n be_v first_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o all_o that_o while_n rome_n be_v not_o the_o mistress_n church_n and_o so_o if_o you_o shall_v have_v the_o supremacy_n it_o must_v be_v by_o a_o change_n from_o the_o first_o state_n though_o indeed_o peter_n himself_o never_o claim_v nor_o exercise_v any_o such_o thing_n much_o less_o do_v he_o ever_o leave_v it_o to_o a_o successor_n and_o least_o of_o all_o as_o fix_v to_o one_o city_n any_o more_o than_o st._n john_n power_n be_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o indeed_o bellarmine_n himself_o dare_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o universal_a bishop_n may_v possible_o be_v remove_v from_o rome_n to_o some_o other_o place_n and_o then_o suppose_v it_o be_v to_o avignion_n or_o to_o constantinople_n where_o be_v st._n peter_n successor_n how_o must_v he_o be_v choose_v or_o how_o shall_v his_o power_n above_o other_o be_v know_v when_o all_o the_o old_a pretension_n fail_v pag._n 78._o till_o then_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o vain_a word_n when_o i_o note_v that_o they_o that_o make_v 2._o christ_n corporal_o present_a in_o every_o church_n in_o the_o eucharist_n shall_v not_o say_v that_o the_o king_n of_o the_o church_n be_v absent_a he_o reply_v we_o dispute_v of_o a_o proper_a visible_a presence_n such_o as_o be_v not_o in_o the_o eucharist_n ans._n you_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v there_o corporal_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o christ._n wine_n and_o that_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o see_v be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o no_o bread_n and_o yet_o that_o we_o see_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n sure_o we_o see_v something_o or_o nothing_o and_o if_o it_o be_v something_o and_o not_o bread_n nor_o christ_n body_n what_o be_v it_o but_o suppose_v that_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n which_o we_o see_v yet_o while_o the_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o his_o body_n that_o which_o you_o do_v see_v be_v near_o to_o he_o than_o a_o king_n crown_n or_o clothing_n be_v to_o the_o king_n and_o yet_o if_o you_o see_v the_o king_n only_o in_o his_o clothes_n his_o ●…ace_n be_v veil_v will_v you_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o visible_a king_n do_v clothing_n make_v king_n or_o the_o species_n of_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n make_v christ_n to_o become_v invisible_a 2._o do_v you_o not_o bow_v towards_o he_o on_o the_o altar_n do_v you_o not_o carry_v he_o in_o procession_n about_o the_o street_n and_o do_v you_o not_o constrain_v all_o that_o meet_v you_o to_o kneel_v down_o and_o adore_v sure_o you_o do_v not_o think_v he_o to_o be_v out_o of_o sight_n or_o hear_v or_o far_o off_o to_o who_o you_o pray_v and_o who_o you_o so_o honour_v as_o present_v as_o paul_n say_v to_o the_o jew_n god_n be_v not_o far_o from_o every_o one_o of_o we_o so_o that_o christ_n who_o be_v adorable_o present_a in_o his_o body_n on_o the_o altar_n and_o corporal_o present_a in_o every_o receiver_n hand_n and_o mouth_n sure_o have_v not_o yet_o forsake_v the_o earth_n so_o far_o as_o to_o be_v uncapable_a of_o constitute_v a_o visible_a kingdom_n without_o a_o pope_n pag._n 79._o i_o tell_v he_o that_o when_o they_o prove_v 1._o that_o christ_n be_v so_o absent_a from_o his_o church_n that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o deputy_n to_o essentiate_v his_o kingdom_n and_o 2._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o depute_a they_o will_v have_v do_v their_o work_n he_o reply_v i_o have_v prove_v that_o christ_n institute_v st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n to_o govern_v visible_o his_o whole_o universal_a church_n in_o all_o age_n ans._n wonderful_a when_o be_v it_o and_o where_o let_v the_o reader_n find_v any_o such_o thing_n in_o your_o writing_n for_o i_o can_v no_o not_o a_o word_n have_v that_o be_v do_v i_o have_v contradict_v you_o no_o long_o but_o if_o it_o be_v by_o a_o invisible_a proof_n that_o your_o visible_a head_n reign_v i_o can_v judge_v of_o it_o he_o next_o add_v i_o press_v you_o therefore_o once_o more_o to_o give_v a_o instance_n of_o something_o which_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n by_o christ_n institution_n and_o yet_o be_v accidental_a to_o the_o church_n ans._n 1._o if_o i_o have_v not_o give_v you_o such_o instance_n and_o reason_n also_o to_o prove_v that_o all_o that_o christ_n institute_v to_o continue_v be_v not_o essential_a let_v the_o reader_n say_v that_o i_o have_v fail_v you_o 2._o but_o if_o i_o have_v not_o what_o be_v it_o to_o your_o cause_n will_v it_o thence_o follow_v that_o
people_n yea_o and_o clergy_n it_o be_v most_o probable_a never_o understand_v the_o controversy_n 7._o yea_o he_o that_o with_o judgement_n read_v the_o act_n history_n and_o debate_n of_o those_o time_n may_v well_o doubt_v whether_o nestorius_n eutyches_n or_o dioscorus_n understand_v they_o themselves_o and_o whether_o the_o heresy_n lie_v not_o most_o in_o a_o unskilfulness_n of_o interpret_n of_o word_n and_o expression_n dioscorus_n solemn_o profess_v that_o he_o hold_v neither_o division_n of_o nature_n nor_o confusion_n of_o they_o nor_o transmutation_n and_o that_o antecedent_n to_o their_o union_n they_o be_v two_o these_o be_v unskilful_a expression_n but_o one_o will_v think_v that_o he_o that_o hold_v that_o union_n do_v neither_o change_n nor_o confound_v they_o must_v needs_o mean_v that_o they_o be_v distinct_a though_o not_o divide_v and_o the_o orthodox_n deny_v division_n as_o well_o as_o he_o and_o if_o man_n have_v in_o those_o council_n but_o distin_a guish_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n union_n or_o one_o half_n as_o exact_o as_o all_o metaphysic_n and_o schoolman_n use_v to_o do_v it_o be_v a_o great_a doubt_n whether_o it_o will_v not_o have_v reconcile_v both_o eutyches_n and_o nestorius_n to_o the_o orthodox_n it_o be_v most_o undeniable_a that_o there_o be_v a_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n in_o which_o christ_n nature_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o and_o a_o sense_n in_o which_o they_o can_v be_v so_o say_v a_o sense_n in_o which_o he_o have_v two_o will_n and_o a_o sense_n in_o which_o he_o have_v ●…ut_o one_o a_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n person_n in_o which_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v have_v two_o person_n and_o a_o sense_n in_o which_o it_o can_v not_o be_v so_o say_v and_o he_o that_o read_v how_o hierom_n be_v a_o while_n hereticated_a for_o refuse_v the_o word_n hypostasis_fw-la and_o what_o controversy_n be_v about_o that_o word_n and_o persona_fw-la between_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a bishop_n till_o it_o be_v find_v out_o by_o nazianzen_n and_o other_o peaceable_a man_n that_o they_o mean_v the_o same_o thing_n may_v possible_o hope_v that_o if_o such_o man_n as_o be_v peaceable_a and_o skilful_a in_o discuss_v ambiguous_a term_n and_o drive_v unskilful_a man_n to_o understand_v other_o and_o speak_v apt_o themselves_o have_v patient_o search_v the_o business_n to_o the_o bottom_n they_o will_v have_v find_v few_o heretic_n than_o be_v judge_v such_o and_o their_o own_o writer_n have_v no_o other_o argument_n to_o excuse_v pope_n honorius_n condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n by_o a_o council_n as_o well_o as_o nestorius_n and_o dioscorus_n but_o that_o he_o understand_v not_o the_o word_n and_o be_v misunderstand_v and_o nestorius_n whatever_o some_o say_v to_o the_o contrary_a deny_v christ_n to_o be_v two_o person_n these_o be_v his_o word_n to_o cyril_n paper_n in_o eo_fw-la 〈◊〉_d laudo_fw-la quod_fw-la distinctionem_fw-la naturarum_fw-la secundum_fw-la divinitatis_fw-la &_o humanitatis_fw-la rationem_fw-la harumque_fw-la in_o una_fw-la duntax●…t_fw-la persona_fw-la proedicas_fw-la his_o heresy_n lie_v in_o two_o word_n 1._o that_o he_o say_v mary_n be_v not_o to_o becal_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d deipara_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o mother_n of_o christ_n 2._o that_o he_o say_v in_o the_o synod_n he_o will_v not_o say_v that_o god_n be_v two_o or_o three_o month_n old_a and_o do_v not_o cyril_n answer_n to_o the_o objection_n of_o the_o oriental_a bishop_n plain_o show_v that_o the_o aptness_n of_o the_o word_n deipara_n be_v the_o controversy_n and_o he_o that_o have_v but_o say_v that_o christus_fw-la non_fw-la qua_fw-la deus_fw-la sed_fw-la qui_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o qua_fw-la deus_fw-la unitus_fw-la humanitati_fw-la be_v bear_v of_o mary_n have_v be_v like_a to_o have_v reconcile_v they_o all_o however_o the_o number_n so_o judge_v be_v inconsiderable_a as_o to_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o those_o country_n and_o among_o million_o of_o christian_n it_o be_v not_o twenty_o bishop_n think_v guilty_a that_o be_v a_o proof_n that_o the_o country_n or_o multitude_n be_v so_o 8._o to_o conclude_v the_o papist_n themselves_o ordinary_o justify_v they_o from_o that_o charge_n and_o confess_v that_o the_o christian_n of_o those_o country_n be_v honest_a harmless_a man_n that_o understand_v not_o what_o such_o heresy_n be_v or_o detest_v they_o as_o i_o have_v before_o show_v out_o of_o brochardus_fw-la that_o dwell_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o other_o and_o what_o man_n can_v tell_v we_o that_o million_o of_o profess_a christian_n be_v heretic_n that_o never_o declare_v any_o such_o thing_n themselves_o be_v it_o lawful_a so_o bold_o to_o censure_v other_o how_o much_o more_o excusable_a shall_v we_o be_v if_o we_o judge_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o follower_n heretic_n who_o be_v far_o more_o corrupt_a and_o erroneous_a than_o these_o who_o they_o accuse_v and_o deny_v to_o be_v christian_n but_o page_n 86._o 87._o malignity_n be_v so_o hard_o put_v to_o it_o for_o some_o sorry_a pretension_n against_o christian_a charity_n and_o for_o unchurch_v the_o most_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o have_v nothing_o to_o 11._o say_v but_o such_o stuff_n as_o this_o i_o require_v the_o nomination_n of_o the_o determinate_a opinion_n of_o society_n as_o hussites_n waldenses_n nestorian_n eutychian_o etc._n etc._n not_o of_o their_o person_n and_o therefore_o i_o say_v you_o nominate_v none_o much_o less_o prosecute_v you_o those_o with_o who_o you_o begin_v now_o these_o be_v greek_n armenian_n ethiopian_n protestant_n so_o that_o i_o speak_v undeniable_o of_o the_o nomination_n of_o sect_n and_o society_n not_o of_o name_n and_o surname_n and_o genealogy_n of_o person_n there_o be_v different_a sect_n and_o profession_n in_o different_a country_n as_o armenia_n abassia_n etc._n etc._n i_o require_v the_o nomination_n of_o which_o of_o those_o sect_n or_o party_n you_o mean_v in_o those_o time_n and_o nation_n not_o what_o be_v their_o name_n and_o surname_n nor_o be_v it_o sufficient_a that_o you_o say_v there_o be_v christian_n that_o be_v christian_n univocal_o so_o call_v or_o true_a christian_n in_o all_o age_n in_o armenia_n ethiopia_n egypt_n etc._n etc._n who_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n for_o unless_o you_o nominate_v of_o what_o party_n sect_n opinion_n or_o profession_n they_o be_v how_o shall_v any_o man_n judge_n whether_o they_o hold_v not_o some_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n and_o by_o that_o become_v no_o christian_n etc._n etc._n answ._n i_o will_v not_o insult_v over_o man_n in_o their_o sin_n and_o folly_n but_o i_o must_v say_v that_o i_o reverenee_n that_o wisdom_n and_o justice_n of_o god_n which_o have_v make_v the_o evidence_n of_o christian_a truth_n and_o the_o right_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o obligation_n to_o love_n and_o concord_n so_o clear_a that_o learned_a malice_n train_v up_o in_o satan_n 〈◊〉_d can_v speak_v against_o it_o without_o such_o impudencse_n as_o this_o man_n here_o be_v put_v to_o exercise_v when_o he_o deny_v most_o of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v true_a christian_n he_o put_v i_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v be_v such_o i_o convince_v he_o that_o i_o be_o not_o bind_v ●…o_o name_n the_o man_n and_o even_o the_o country_n itself_o may_v prove_v but_o a_o mutable_a seat_n of_o religion_n but_o i_o prove_v that_o christian_n that_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n or_o be_v none_o of_o his_o subject_n have_v successive_o from_o the_o beginning_n inhabit_v those_o country_n and_o now_o the_o man_n be_v angry_a that_o i_o will_v not_o call_v they_o by_o the_o name_n which_o their_o malice_n cast_v on_o they_o but_o only_o call_v they_o christian_n of_o armenia_n ethiopia_n etc._n etc._n their_o factious_a interest_n teach_v they_o to_o stigmatize_v better_a man_n with_o odious_a title_n and_o i_o must_v needs_o do_v so_o too_o but_o sir_n resume_v some_o modesty_n if_o i_o prove_v they_o christian_n do_v you_o prove_v they_o unchristn_v if_o you_o can_v i_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v baptize_v and_o profess_v all_o these_o creed_n which_o be_v the_o symbol_n of_o christian_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n and_o they_o receive_v the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v you_o prove_v that_o they_o invalidate_v all_o this_o profession_n or_o confess_v yourself_o a_o calumniator_n must_v i_o tell_v you_o what_o by_o opinion_n they_o all_o hold_v that_o you_o may_v judge_v whether_o they_o be_v christian_n or_o not_o can_v you_o judge_v by_o their_o baptism_n creed_n and_o profession_n of_o christianity_n till_o you_o be_v tell_v their_o opinion_n in_o controvert_v thing_n why_o then_o say_v you_o that_o you_o call_v not_o for_o their_o name_n how_o can_v i_o tell_v the_o opinion_n of_o man_n un-named_n and_o unknown_a but_o by_o their_o profession_n i_o know_v not_o the_o opinion_n of_o my_o neighbour_n at_o the_o next_o door_n and_o
force_v the_o imperial_a church_n to_o have_v own_v he_o as_o orthodox_n nor_o to_o have_v forbear_v renounce_v communion_n with_o he_o 3._o and_o sure_o if_o it_o be_v heresy_n which_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o be_v so_o before_o it_o be_v declare_v so_o by_o the_o council_n and_o therefore_o may_v be_v so_o know_v by_o that_o extraimperial_a church_n to_o which_o he_o shall_v remove_v §_o 5._o three_o the_o same_o answer_n serve_v to_o his_o three_o reason_n that_o if_o any_o imperial_a country_n be_v win_v from_o the_o empire_n they_o will_v be_v free_a not_o free_a from_o other_o man_n disow_v or_o renounce_v they_o i_o tell_v you_o before_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o theodoret_n that_o james_n bishop_n of_o nisibis_n be_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a for_o nisibis_n be_v then_o under_o the_o roman_a empire_n §_o 6._o four_o the_o same_o answer_n suffice_v to_o his_o four_o reason_n that_o a_o nation_n conquer_a will_v have_v be_v bring_v under_o the_o council_n and_o faith_n will_v have_v depend_v on_o the_o fortune_n of_o war._n answ._n true_a if_o faith_n be_v no_o faith_n without_o a_o general_n council_n determination_n and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o faith_n in_o the_o world_n before_o there_o be_v a_o general_a council_n nor_o any_o christian_a before_o constantine_n time_n what_o if_o only_o a_o provincial_a council_n have_v condemn_v any_o heresy_n consider_v how_o far_o the_o extraimperialist_n have_v be_v oblige_v by_o it_o the_o truth_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o decision_n will_v have_v oblige_v they_o §_o 7._o five_o he_o say_v it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o kingdom_n that_o be_v now_o fall_v from_o that_o empire_n shall_v have_v no_o successive_a descend_v obligation_n to_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n answ._n not_o at_o all_o as_o subject_n to_o man_n dead_a and_o go_v nor_o as_o if_o the_o canon_n of_o those_o council_n be_v a_o law_n proper_o divine_a and_o so_o bind_v we_o as_o mere_a subject_n of_o god_n nor_o yet_o as_o subject_n to_o the_o present_a patriarch_n of_o rome_n alexandria_n antioch_n etc._n etc._n who_o predecessor_n make_v those_o canon_n but_o 1._o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o they_o declare_v bind_v man_n before_o and_o bind_v they_o since_o in_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o and_o god_n oblige_v we_o to_o do_v all_o thing_n in_o as_o much_o love_n and_o concord_n as_o we_o can_v and_o when_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n agree_v upon_o any_o thing_n lawful_a and_o convenient_a a_o obligation_n for_o concord_n may_v hence_o arise_v on_o other_o without_o any_o subjection_n to_o a_o govern_v authority_n and_o in_o these_o two_o respect_n such_o council_n may_v oblige_v we_o but_o not_o as_o subject_n §_o 8._o six_o his_o last_o reason_n be_v that_o those_o extraimperial_a christian_n who_o embrace_v the_o heresy_n condemn_v in_o any_o one_o of_o those_o council_n never_o allege_v this_o reason_n answ._n 1._o those_o council_n themselves_o have_v more_o modesty_n than_o to_o say_v this_o be_v a_o heresy_n because_o we_o have_v judge_v it_o so_o for_o it_o be_v so_o before_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n word_n it_o have_v be_v therefore_o a_o frivolous_a defence_n of_o heresy_n to_o say_v we_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o council_n unless_o they_o can_v have_v say_v we_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 2._o what_o extraimperial_a nation_n mean_v you_o that_o own_v condemn_v heresy_n if_o the_o arrian_n goth_n they_o learned_a it_o from_o valens_n and_o the_o general_a council_n of_o the_o empire_n if_o the_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o prove_v that_o any_o extraimperial_a nation_n be_v such_o if_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o any_o heresy_n what_o occasion_n have_v they_o to_o allege_v such_o reason_n to_o justify_v themselves_o to_o man_n that_o never_o send_v or_o urge_v the_o authority_n of_o such_o council_n on_o they_o prove_v you_o first_o that_o ever_o any_o general_a council_n for_o five_o hundred_o year_n do_v judge_v any_o extraimperial_a bishop_n or_o depose_v any_o one_o of_o they_o for_o heresy_n 3._o but_o your_o sect_n use_v to_o accuse_v the_o abassine_n as_o eutychian_o and_o godiguus_fw-la and_o other_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o they_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n §_o 9_o i_o tell_v he_o that_o some_o heretic_n be_v not_o christian_n univocal_o and_o other_o so_o call_v be_v better_a christian_n than_o the_o papist_n the_o former_a be_v not_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n the_o latter_a be_v it_o be_v not_o a_o usurper_n call_v other_o heretic_n that_o will_v blot_v their_o name_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o i_o shall_v have_v tell_v he_o which_o of_o they_o i_o take_v for_o univocal_a christian_n and_o that_o they_o have_v the_o name_n give_v they_o long_o ago_o answ._n 1._o by_o what_o authority_n can_v you_o require_v i_o if_o you_o name_v man_n by_o a_o hundred_o nickname_n to_o tell_v you_o all_o over_o which_o of_o these_o i_o account_v christian_n be_v it_o not_o enough_o that_o i_o tell_v you_o in_o general_n that_o i_o account_v all_o those_o christian_n that_o hold_v all_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o christianity_n and_o renounce_v none_o of_o they_o 2._o how_o long_o soever_o man_n be_v calumniate_v that_o prove_v not_o the_o calumny_n just._n it_o be_v long_o since_o the_o general_n council_n at_o basil_n pronounce_v the_o pope_n a_o heretic_n and_o that_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o deny_v that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v judge_v he_o and_o yet_o the_o papist_n believe_v not_o this_o council_n §_o 10._o i_o tell_v he_o that_o i_o have_v rather_o be_v in_o the_o case_n of_o many_o that_o have_v be_v burn_v as_o heretic_n than_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o other_o that_o burn_v they_o his_o answer_n to_o this_o be_v he_o wish_v i_o better_o and_o he_o bring_v many_o accusation_n against_o the_o albigenses_n as_o if_o we_o have_v never_o disprove_v those_o calumny_n which_o have_v be_v so_o long_o and_o full_o do_v as_o among_o other_o by_o bishop_n usher_n d●…_n statu_fw-la &_o success_n ecclesiar_v and_o paul_n perrin_n it_o be_v a_o company_n of_o manichee_n only_o that_o be_v scatter_v among_o the_o albigenses_n and_o waldense_n that_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o heresy_n mention_v by_o he_o as_o i_o have_v also_o show_v in_o my_o confutation_n of_o mr._n danvers_n the_o anabaptist_n §_o 11._o i_o tell_v he_o that_o all_o those_o that_o be_v true_a christian_n be_v of_o one_o universal_a church_n and_o he_o again_o cant_v over_o the_o nickname_n of_o some_o and_o will_v know_v which_o of_o they_o ay_o mean_v and_o i_o tell_v he_o again_o that_o i_o mean_v all_o that_o own_v the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n perhaps_o such_o a_o monothelite_n as_o pope_n honorius_n may_v be_v a_o christian._n i_o tell_v you_o before_o that_o anatolius_n in_o the_o council_n open_o say_v that_o dioscorus_n be_v not_o condemn_v for_o heresy_n and_o i_o will_v most_o papist_n be_v as_o good_a christian_n as_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v the_o novatian_o be_v the_o name_n of_o luciferian_o quartodecimani_n iconoclast_n waldens●…s_n hugonotes_n lutheran_n zwinglians_n calvinist_n etc._n etc._n unchristian_a none_o no_o more_o than_o the_o name_n of_o papist_n and_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n 1._o how_o zealous_a macedonius_n nestorius_n and_o dioscorus_n be_v against_o heretic_n and_o how_o hot_a in_o persecute_v they_o and_o stir_v up_o the_o emperor_n against_o they_o and_o by_o this_o be_v carry_v into_o those_o error_n for_o which_o they_o be_v condemn_v as_o heretic_n themselves_o 2._o and_o how_o long_o it_o be_v oft_o in_o doubt_n which_o party_n shall_v be_v account_v heretic_n till_o the_o countenance_n of_o emperor_n turn_v the_o major_a vote_n of_o the_o bishop_n right_o in_o the_o day_n of_o constantius_n and_o valens_n the_o orthodox_n go_v for_o heretic_n with_o the_o great_a number_n and_o under_o valentinian_n and_o theodosius_n they_o be_v catholic_n under_o theodosius_n junior_a the_o eutychian_o go_v for_o catholic_n and_o under_o martian_a they_o be_v condemn_v the_o same_o bishop_n go_v one_o way_n at_o sirmium_n and_o ariminum_n with_o old_a osius_n who_o after_o repent_v and_o go_v the_o other_o way_n and_o the_o same_o bishop_n go_v one_o way_n at_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n who_o recant_v at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o how_o long_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o monothelite_n in_o doubt_n and_o the_o iconoclast_n much_o long_o §_o 12._o when_o i_o tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v only_o our_o relation_n to_o christ_n the_o head_n that_o make_v all_o christian_n one_o church_n he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v but_o our_o causal_n and_o not_o formal_a unity_n and_o that_o faith_n and_o charity_n be_v not_o
virgin_n mary_n and_o yet_o you_o take_v it_o for_o a_o controversy_n etc._n etc._n be_v these_o as_o sufficient_o propose_v as_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o christ_n 3._o when_o petavius_n cit_v the_o word_n of_o most_o of_o the_o doctor_n or_o father_n that_o write_v before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o of_o eusebius_n himself_o that_o be_v of_o the_o council_n and_o subscribe_v it_o as_o be_v for_o arrianisme_n or_o dangerous_o favour_v it_o do_v all_o these_o father_n think_v that_o the_o proposal_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v as_o sufficient_a as_o of_o a_o god_n or_o christ._n §_o 15._o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o clear_v his_o argument_n by_o two_o delude_a instance_n which_o suppose_v a_o equality_n in_o the_o revelation_n but_o he_o that_o know_v not_o 1_o that_o it_o be_v long_o before_o all_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v equal_o know_v to_o be_v god_n word_n 2._o and_o that_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o equal_o certain_a what_o council_n be_v true_a and_o what_o tradition_n 3._o and_o that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o another_o in_o intelligible_a place_n else_o why_o do_v their_o exposition_n so_o disagree_v yea_o of_o council_n too_o 4._o and_o that_o the_o heretic_n have_v still_o plead_v scripture_n and_o tradition_n and_o council_n as_o well_o as_o the_o orthodox_n as_o the_o eutychian_o etc._n etc._n do_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a all_o equal_o profess_v to_o believe_v scripture_n tradition_n and_o true_a council_n but_o not_o equal_o understand_v they_o i_o say_v he_o that_o know_v not_o all_o this_o know_v not_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o shall_v be_v know_v in_o this_o dispute_n but_o how_o he_o will_v excuse_v the_o papist_n from_o heresy_n by_o his_o reason_v i_o know_v not_o e._n g._n christ_n institute_v his_o supper_n say_v equal_o 1._o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n 2._o and_o equal_o say_v take_v eat_v and_o drink_v this_o the_o papist_n 1._o do_v not_o believe_v that_o literal_o this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n though_o equal_o say_v 2._o nor_o do_v they_o believe_v that_o they_o must_v drink_v of_o it_o though_o equal_o command_v ergo_fw-la by_o w._n i_n argue_n the_o papist_n believe_v not_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v literal_o christ_n body_n or_o that_o it_o must_v be_v eat_v because_o of_o christ_n truth_n or_o authority_n that_o speak_v it_o else_o they_o will_v have_v believe_v both_o §_o 16._o he_o add_v a_o supposition_n like_o the_o rest_n that_o a_o calvinist_n be_v assure_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o antichrist_n by_o the_o same_o authority_n which_o he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o sufficient_a proposer_n of_o the_o article_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o yet_o here_o may_v lie_v one_o of_o his_o usual_a equivocation_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o author_n and_o prime_a revealer_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v one_o and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o prime_n instrumental_a revealer_n be_v another_o the_o first_o be_v god_n the_o second_o be_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n tell_v we_o where_o either_o of_o these_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n it_o not_o antichrist_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o distant_a messenger_n and_o teacher_n be_v of_o a_o three_o rank_n a_o drunken_a or_o fornicate_a priest_n may_v be_v such_o a_o messenger_n or_o teacher_n and_o may_v give_v a_o infidel_n those_o reason_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o by_o god_n blessing_n may_v bring_v he_o to_o believe_v and_o it_o be_v possible_a such_o a_o priest_n and_o a_o synod_n of_o such_o may_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n and_o another_o synod_n may_v say_v he_o be_v §_o 17._o i_o come_v next_o to_o answer_v a_o question_n of_o his_o own_o whether_o i_o take_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o protestant_n to_o be_v one_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o they_o have_v two_o head_n and_o we_o but_o one_o as_o they_o be_v mere_a christian_n unite_v in_o christ_n they_o be_v one_o church_n with_o we_o as_o papist_n unite_v in_o the_o pope_n they_o be_v not_o and_o if_o any_o so_o hold_v the_o papacy_n as_o not_o real_o to_o hold_v christianity_n those_o be_v not_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n with_o we_o otherwise_o they_o be_v though_o a_o corrupt_a disease_a erroneous_a part_n to_o this_o he_o say_v who_o ever_o call_v a_o king_n and_o his_o viceroy_n a_o captain_n and_o lieutenant_n two_o head_n the_o pope_n be_v a_o dependent_a officer_n answ._n 1._o but_o if_o you_o distinguish_v between_o a_o visible_a head_n and_o a_o invisible_a and_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n only_o be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a and_o that_o christ_n be_v only_o the_o invisible_a head_n by_o influx_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o monstrous_a body_n if_o it_o have_v not_o such_o a_o visible_a head_n as_o you_o do_v 2._o and_o if_o this_o visible_a head_n be_v a_o usurpation_n never_o own_v by_o christ_n then_o i_o have_v reason_n to_o distinguish_v the_o policy_n which_o be_v of_o god_n make_v from_o that_o which_o be_v a_o usurpation_n and_o of_o man_n relation_n according_o if_o any_o king_n shall_v say_v i_o be_o a_o vice-god_n or_o god_n viceroy_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o earth_n ●…nd_v that_o by_o god_n appointment_n and_o none_o can_v be_v save_v that_o obey_v i_o not_o i_o will_v distinguish_v between_o the_o world_n or_o particular_a person_n as_o god_n subject_n and_o as_o this_o vicegod_n subject_n §_o 18._o but_o he_o say_v be_v it_o possible_a for_o two_o person_n to_o be_v papist_n and_o one_o to_o destroy_v his_o christianity_n and_o the_o other_o not_o answ._n yes_o very_o possible_a and_o common_a that_o be_v one_o hold_v those_o error_n which_o by_o consequence_n subvert_v some_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o as_o to_o the_o word_n not_o understand_v or_o not_o understand_v the_o consequence_n or_o only_o speculative_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n hold_v the_o subvert_a article_n not_o discern_v the_o contradiction_n fast_o and_o practical_o another_o do_v the_o contrary_a even_o as_o a_o monothelite_n or_o a_o nestorian_a or_o eutychian_a may_v either_o be_v one_o that_o only_o as_o to_o the_o word_n or_o superficial_o err_v and_o in_o sense_n or_o practical_o hold_v the_o truth_n or_o one_o that_o be_v contrary_a this_o shall_v seem_v no_o strange_a thing_n to_o you_o for_o even_o a_o man_n that_o profess_v only_a christianity_n may_v do_v it_o but_o nomine_fw-la tenus_fw-la not_o understand_v it_o or_o superficial_o and_o not_o practical_o and_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n indeed_o §_o 19_o when_o i_o express_v my_o hope_n that_o even_o he_o and_o i_o as_o christian_n be_v of_o one_o church_n he_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o 1._o because_o i_o be_o of_o a_o church_n by_o myself_o neither_o of_o they_o nor_o any_o other_o part_n 2._o because_o i_o have_v no_o faith_n answ._n it_o seem_v then_o that_o mere_a christianity_n be_v no_o faith_n and_o that_o there_o be_v none_o of_o the_o mere_a christian_a church_n but_o i._o but_o who_o will_v believe_v the_o latter_a and_o when_o will_v he_o prove_v either_o a_o answer_n to_o w._n j_n seven_o chapter_n §_o 1._o to_o his_o question_n why_o we_o separate_v from_o they_o i_o answer_v that_o as_o they_o be_v christian_n we_o separate_v not_o from_o they_o as_o papist_n we_o be_v never_o of_o they_o but_o our_o forefather_n think_v repentance_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v no_o sin_n if_o by_o popery_n they_o separate_v from_o christianity_n they_o be_v damnable_a separatist_n if_o they_o do_v not_o we_o be_v of_o the_o same_o church_n whether_o they_o will_v or_o not_o 〈◊〉_d to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o we_o separate_v from_o they_o as_o much_o as_o the_o pelagian_n donatist_n acacian_o luciferian_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o do_v from_o the_o church_n answ._n 1._o the_o doctrinal_a error_n and_o the_o separation_n be_v of_o different_a consideration_n the_o pelagian_n err_v as_o some_o dominican_n say_v the_o jesuit_n do_v the_o donatist_n like_o the_o papist_n appropriate_v the_o church_n to_o their_o own_o bishop_n and_o party_n we_o do_v none_o of_o this_o lucifer_n calaritanus_n be_v too_o zealous_a against_o the_o arrian_n not_o communicate_v with_o they_o upon_o so_o short_a repentance_n as_o other_o do_v but_o they_o go_v not_o so_o far_o as_o crab_n say_v the_o roman_a council_n in_o sylvester_n day●…_n do_v that_o receive_v no_o repentance_n before_o forty_o year_n nor_o so_o far_o as_o the_o honest_a elebertine_n council_n in_o the_o number_n of_o year_n of_o man_n exclusion_n from_o the_o communion_n i_o take_v lucifer_n for_o erroneous_a and_o schismatical_a but_o not_o comparable_a to_o the_o papist_n who_o err_v far_o more_o and_o yet_o separate_v from_o most_o of_o the_o
christian_a world_n these_o schismatic_n name_v by_o you_o sin_v by_o unjust_a separation_n from_o the_o imperial_a church_n near_o they_o but_o they_o do_v not_o separate_v from_o all_o the_o world_n save_o themselves_o as_o the_o papist_n do_v and_o if_o you_o believe_v history_n you_o will_v find_v that_o some_o of_o they_o do_v not_o separate_v themselves_o till_o they_o be_v anathematise_v and_o cast_v out_o by_o other_o nestorius_n retire_v and_o live_v four_o year_n in_o great_a repute_n in_o his_o old_a monastery_n near_o antioch_n the_o novatian_o be_v too_o scrupulous_a of_o join_v with_o wicked_a priest_n and_o people_n and_o your_o writer_n say_v that_o pope_n nicholas_n forbid_v hear_v mass_n from_o a_o fornicator_n priest_n i_o have_v rather_o be_v in_o this_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o novatian_o mind_n than_o of_o those_o catholic_n priest_n 2._o but_o i_o think_v this_o be_v a_o considerable_a difference_n the_o erroneous_a schismatic_n of_o those_o time_n much_o more_o the_o proper_a heretic_n do_v sinful_o withdraw_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o most_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n to_o profess_v some_o error_n of_o their_o own_o in_o singular_a conventicle_n but_o we_o who_o take_v mere_a christianity_n for_o our_o religion_n do_v own_o communion_n with_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n yea_o with_o all_o as_o christian_a and_o sepa●…ate_v not_o for_o error_n but_o only_o from_o error_n and_o sin_n we_o separate_v from_o pelagian_n as_o pelagian_n from_o novatian_n as_o novatian_o and_o from_o papist_n as_o papist_n but_o not_o as_o christian_n you_o say_v no_o more_o do_v they_o then_o i_o answer_v 1._o they_o separated_z from_o truth_n and_o we_o from_o error_n as_o the_o council_n that_o condemn_v he_o do_v from_o pope_n honorius_n 2._o the_o luciferian_o and_o novatian_o separate_v voluntary_o we_o be_v cast_v out_o by_o you_o from_o christian_a communion_n and_o be_v count_v separatist_n unless_o we_o will_v sin_n with_o you_o or_o be_v burn_v as_o heretic_n 3._o let_v the_o reader_n still_o note_v the_o cheat_a ambiguity_n of_o your_o word_n separation_n the_o schismatic_n name_v separate_v from_o brotherly_a communion_n but_o we_o separate_v from_o tyrannical_a usurp_v domination_n and_o be_v call_v schismatic_n not_o because_o we_o will_v not_o have_v such_o communion_n with_o you_o in_o all_o christian_a truth_n and_o duty_n but_o because_o we_o will_v not_o be_v your_o vassal_n or_o subject_n and_o sin_n as_o oft_o as_o you_o command_v we_o §_o 2._o pag._n 155._o he_o say_v that_o have_v we_o desert_v the_o sole_a communion_n of_o the_o papacy_n it_o may_v have_v bear_v some_o show_n of_o defence_n but_o see_v when_o we_o separate_v from_o that_o we_o remain_v separate_v as_o much_o from_o all_o particular_a visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n as_o that_o you_o have_v no_o excuse_n answ._n if_o the_o reader_n have_v not_o a_o very_a gross_a head_n he_o shall_v see_v your_o calumny_n as_o your_o church_n be_v essentiate_v by_o the_o papal_a head_n so_o far_o we_o renounce_v the_o very_a essence_n of_o your_o church_n none_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n pretend_v to_o any_o such_o universal_a head_n but_o christ._n therefore_o we_o separate_v not_o from_o their_o head_n or_o any_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o church_n as_o such_o we_o separate_v as_o far_o as_o we_o be_v able_a from_o the_o corrupt_a accident_n and_o fault_n of_o every_o church_n and_o christian_n and_o will_v fain_o separate_v more_o from_o our_o own_o as_o we_o separate_v from_o the_o abassine_n in_o the_o point_n of_o their_o oft_o baptise_v and_o from_o the_o muscovite_n greek_n armenian_n as_o to_o their_o ignorance_n and_o some_o mistake_v and_o vice_n and_o so_o we_o will_v separate_v from_o drunkenness_n fornication_n covetousness_n simony_n false_a subscription_n lie_n etc._n etc._n in_o any_o where_o we_o find_v they_o in_o the_o world_n but_o this_o be_v not_o schism_n or_o separate_n from_o the_o church_n dare_v you_o say_v that_o this_o be_v not_o our_o duty_n will_v you_o join_v in_o sin_n with_o every_o sinful_a church_n for_o fear_n of_o schism_n §_o 3._o but_o he_o say_v that_o any_o arrian_n will_v say_v so_o that_o he_o separate_v not_o from_o the_o church_n as_o christian._n answ._n we_o have_v brave_a dispute_v with_o a_o man_n that_o can_v or_o will_v not_o distinguish_v between_o say_v and_o do_v do_v it_o follow_v that_o a_o arrian_n do_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n as_o christian_a because_o they_o say_v they_o do_v not_o i_o prove_v the_o contrary_n he_o that_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n for_o a_o ess●…ntial_a part_n of_o christianity_n separate_v from_o the_o church_n as_o christian_a but_o so_o do_v the_o arrian_n ergo_fw-la i_o prove_v the_o minor_n he_o that_o separate_v as_o deny_v the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n separate_v for_o and_o from_o a_o essential_a part_n of_o christianity_n but_o so_o do_v the_o arrian_n eunomian_o photinian_o samosateman_n socinian_o etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la §_o 4._o next_o i_o open_v their_o deal_n with_o we_o that_o call_v we_o schismatic_n because_o we_o will_v not_o willing_o sin_n with_o they_o and_o be_v burn_v by_o they_o as_o if_o it_o be_v our_o ash_n that_o refuse_v their_o communion_n or_o because_o prince_n will_v punish_v wicked_a priest_n or_o as_o solomon_n cast_v out_o abiathar_n and_o put_v zadok_v in_o his_o place_n or_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o a_o foreign_a usurper_n etc._n etc._n to_o this_o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o rhetorical_a exclamation_n and_o whole_a kingdom_n condemn_v by_o the_o pope_n canon_n to_o the_o flame_n must_v take_v such_o a_o answer_n as_o that_o for_o their_o life_n and_o he_o again_o call_v on_o i_o to_o name_v any_o visible_a church_n which_o we_o separate_v not_o from_o which_o i_o be_o weary_a of_o answer_v so_o oft_o §_o 5._o he_o ask_v i_o whether_o subordination_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o same_o state_n and_o government_n be_v not_o as_o well_o require_v to_o our_o church_n as_o to_o our_o commonwealth_n i_o answer_v yes_o but_o as_o all_o the_o world_n be_v not_o one_o humane_a kingdom_n so_o neither_o be_v it_o one_o humane_a church_n to_o this_o he_o repeat_v his_o old_a visible_a and_o invisible_a take_n it_o for_o grant_v that_o the_o church_n must_v have_v one_o mere_a humane_a visible_a head_n or_o governor_n personal_n or_o collective_a which_o yet_o he_o know_v be_v the_o great_a thing_n which_o i_o deny_v and_o he_o have_v to_o prove_v which_o if_o he_o do_v all_o his_o work_n be_v do_v §_o 6._o i_o note_a that_o their_o own_o divine_n be_v not_o agree_v whether_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v part_n of_o the_o church_n to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o 1._o he_o speak_v of_o part_n of_o the_o church_n as_o i_o understand_v part_n answ._n who_o will_v have_v think_v till_o now_o but_o he_o have_v speak_v as_o he_o think_v himself_o 2._o he_o say_v that_o i_o hold_v that_o some_o heretic_n proper_o so_o call_v be_v part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o unite_v to_o christ_n their_o head_n believe_v the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n and_o so_o be_v christian_n though_o err_v in_o some_o accident_n and_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o all_o christianity_n and_o a_o nou●…lty_n never_o hold_v before_o by_o any_o christian._n answ._n but_o such_o gross_a falsehood_n as_o you_o and_o such_o deceit_n have_v be_v use_v before_o by_o many_o papist_n 1._o where_o do_v i_o say_v that_o such_o as_o err_v only_o in_o some_o accident_n be_v proper_o call_v heretic_n i_o distinguish_v de_n re_fw-mi &_o ratione_fw-la nominis_fw-la but_o undertake_v not_o to_o tell_v from_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v the_o only_a proper_a sense_n of_o heresy_n but_o according_a to_o the_o vulgar_a use_n of_o the_o word_n among_o we_o it_o be_v take_v for_o one_o that_o deny_v some_o essential_a but_o with_o such_o as_o you_o i_o see_v it_o be_v take_v more_o large_o and_o i_o be_o not_o sure_a that_o at_o first_o it_o be_v not_o take_v for_o any_o separation_n or_o schism_n into_o distinct_a sect_n all_o that_o i_o say_v you_o may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o call_v i_o so_o oft_o to_o repeat_v it_o be_v that_o 1._o many_o be_v call_v heretic_n by_o papist_n yea●…_n by_o philastrius_n and_o epiphanius_n that_o be_v true_a christian_n for_o aught_o be_v say_v against_o they_o yea_o philastrius_n number_v some_o certain_a truth_n with_o heresy_n when_o his_o contrary_a error_n be_v like_a such_o 2._o that_o they_o that_o err_v in_o some_o accident_n may_v be_v true_a christian_n or_o else_o i_o think_v there_o be_v none_o at_o age_n in_o the_o world_n 3._o that_o there_o be_v much_o lamentable_a schism_n which_o be_v no_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n 4._o that_o he_o
shall_v be_v save_v that_o hold_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n true_o and_o practical_o 5._o i_o have_v prove_v that_o your_o definition_n absolve_v more_o from_o 〈◊〉_d and_o schism_n than_o i_o do_v but_o it_o be_v here_o to_o be_v note_v that_o this_o man_n make_v multitude_n to_o be_v under_o the_o papal_a head_n that_o be_v no_o subject_n of_o christ_n our_o head_n and_o so_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o church_n of_o his_o own_o that_o be_v none_o of_o christ_n church_n §_o 7._o i_o note_a that_o either_o their_o church_n have_v define_v that_o 〈◊〉_d and_o s●…hismaticks_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n or_o not_o if_o not_o how_o can_v he_o stand_v to_o it_o and_o impose_v it_o on_o i_o if_o they_o have_v than_o their_o doctor_n that_o say_v the_o contrary_a name_v by_o bellarmine_n be_v all_o 〈◊〉_d themselves_o he_o say_v none_o of_o we_o ever_o hold_v they_o part_n as_o you_o do_v that_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o charity_n answ._n be_v not_o this_o man_n hard_o put_v to_o it_o all_o this_o while_n he_o have_v be_v dispute_v we_o and_o all_o call_v by_o their_o usurp_a censure_n heretic_n out_o of_o the_o church_n visible_a and_o call_v on_o i_o to_o prove_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o our_o church_n visible_a and_o tell_v i_o that_o without_o a_o more_o visible_a head_n than_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o visible_a and_o yet_o now_o it_o be_v but_o the_o invisible_a church_n as_o head_v by_o christ_n and_o endow_v with_o true_a faith_n and_o charity_n which_o these_o doctor_n of_o they_o exclude_v heretic_n and_o schismatic_n from_o §_o 8._o i_o say_v arrian_n be_v no_o christian_n deny_v christ_n essence_n he_o reply_v true_a and_o so_o do_v all_o h●…reticks_n i_o answer_v if_o indeed_o they_o do_v so_o not_o only_o in_o word_n not_o understand_v but_o in_o the_o und●…tood_v sense_n so_o that_o this_o be_v real_o their_o belief_n and_o real_o exclusive_a of_o the_o contrary_a truth_n i_o place_v no_o such_o heretic_n in_o the_o church_n he_o prove_v his_o charge_n thus_o whosoever_o deny_v christ_n most_o infallible_a veracity_n and_o divine_a authority_n deny_v somewhat_o essential_a to_o christ_n but_o so_o do_v every_o heretic_n proper_o call_v answ._n away_o with_o such_o heretic_n as_o do_v so_o indeed_o for_o the_o minor_a he_o come_v to_o the_o old_a obscurity_n whosoever_o deny_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v to_o he_o to_o be_v reveal_v by_o christ_n deny_v christ_n verity_n and_o divine_a authority_n but_o so_o do_v every_o heretic_n answ._n i_o have_v oft_o enough_o show_v 1._o that_o the_o argument_n be_v useless_a because_o no_o man_n can_v judge_v of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o proposal_n till_o they_o come_v to_o very_o high_a degree_n as_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o other_o men._n 2._o that_o the_o major_n be_v false_a for_o a_o man_n that_o doubt_v not_o of_o christ_n verity_n and_o authority_n may_v not_o understand_v and_o so_o may_v deny_v many_o truth_n sufficient_o propound_v hinder_v the_o understanding_n of_o they_o by_o sloth_n senfuality_n partiality_n prejudice_n or_o other_o fault_n can_v any_o man_n doubt_v of_o this_o 3._o that_o his_o minor_a also_o be_v false_a he_o may_v be_v a_o heretic_n that_o deny_v that_o which_o be_v not_o sufficient_o propose_v if_o his_o own_o crime_n either_o blind_n his_o mind_n or_o forfeit_v better_a proposal_n cause_v the_o insufficiency_n §_o 9_o i_o note_v how_o they_o charge_v one_o another_o with_o pelagianism_n and_o he_o say_v not_o in_o the_o point_n of_o original_a sin_n answ._n and_o be_v all_o the_o rest_n come_v now_o to_o be_v no_o heresy_n be_v it_o for_o nothing_o else_o that_o they_o be_v judge_v heretic_n the_o rest_n shall_v have_v as_o fair_a play_n if_o your_o interest_n be_v but_o as_o much_o for_o it_o §_o 10._o but_o say_v he_o who_o ever_o before_o you_o say_v that_o the_o catholick-church_n can_v be_v divide_v itself_o when_o it_o be_v a_o most_o perfect_a unity_n a_o grand_a novelty_n of_o you_o answ._n this_o be_v because_o i_o say_v that_o some_o make_v division_n in_o the_o church_n that_o divide_v not_o from_o it_o much_o less_o from_o the_o whole_a i_o prove_v before_o that_o in_o this_o sense_n paul_n usual_o speak_v against_o schism_n or_o division_n as_o when_o he_o tell_v the_o corinthian_n of_o the_o division_n among_o they_o etc._n etc._n but_o this_o man_n will_v make_v scripture_n and_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n to_o be_v grand_a novelty_n may_v there_o not_o be_v division_n in_o a_o house_n in_o a_o kingdom_n in_o a_o army_n in_o a_o particular_a congregation_n as_o that_o at_o corinth_n and_o that_o after_o which_o clement_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o heal_v have_v there_o not_o be_v abundance_n of_o such_o at_o alexandria_n antioch_n constantinople_n be_v there_o no_o division_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o part_n cleave_v to_o one_o pope_n and_o part_n to_o another_o for_o above_o forty_o year_n do_v the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n meet_v to_o heal_v their_o schism_n upon_o mistake_n when_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n and_o do_v all_o their_o historian_n erroneous_o number_v their_o schism_n reader_n pardon_v my_o oft_o answer_v such_o bold_a abuse_n these_o be_v their_o arguer_n that_o hope_v to_o subvert_v england_n §_o 11._o and_o his_o reason_n be_v such_o as_o will_v show_v he_o a_o catharist_n viz._n the_o church_n be_v a_o most_o perfect_a unity_n if_o so_o than_o all_o grace_n be_v perfect_a which_o be_v necessary_a to_o perfect_a unity_n then_o the_o pope_n and_o anti-popes_n the_o war_a papalines_n and_o imperialist_n the_o jesuit_n dominican_n and_o jansinist_n be_v all_o at_o perfect_a unity_n then_o there_o be_v no_o disagreement_n of_o judgement_n will_n or_o practice_n among_o any_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n no_o volume_n write_v against_o other_o alas_o how_o far_o be_v such_o word_n from_o prove_v it_o or_o from_o end_v their_o present_a controversy_n or_o war_n watson_n and_o preston_n have_v scarce_o perfect_a unity_n with_o father_n parson_n and_o the_o jesuit_n do_v perfect_a unity_n draw_v all_o the_o blood_n between_o france_n and_o the_o house_n of_o austria_n or_o in_o france_n between_z king_n hen._n ●…d_n and_o the_o leaguer_n it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o to_o believe_v that_o all_o true_a christian_n have_v a_o true_a unity_n in_o christ_n with_o each_o as_o his_o member_n but_o that_o this_o unity_n among_o themselves_o be_v sad_o imperfect_a and_o so_o be_v when_o they_o have_v all_o the_o contention_n in_o many_o general_a council_n and_o when_o the_o people_n have_v oft_o fight_v it_o out_o to_o blood_n about_o religion_n and_o the_o choice_n of_o bishop_n at_o alexandria_n rome_n etc._n etc._n be_v this_o perfection_n it_o be_v in_o heaven_n that_o we_o hope_v for_o perfect_a unity_n where_o all_o be_v perfect_a §_o 12._o i_o tell_v he_o heresy_n be_v a_o personal_a crime_n the_o nation_n can_v be_v charge_v with_o it_o without_o better_a proof_n he_o say_v if_o he_o have_v 1._o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o of_o our_o writer_n answ._n alas_o poor_a kingdom_n of_o christian_n that_o can_v be_v prove_v heretic_n if_o pet._n heylin_n or_o any_o one_o of_o our_o writer_n do_v but_o say_v it_o 2._o he_o tell_v a_o story_n of_o prestor_n john_n send_v to_o rome_n for_o instruction_n answ._n confute_v so_o oft_o and_o by_o their_o own_o writer_n that_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o repeat_v it_o nor_o do_v that_o prove_v they_o so_o much_o as_o papist_n much_o less_o heretic_n 3._o that_o their_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n prove_v they_o eutychian_o in_o that_o they_o name_v the_o three_o former_a council_n and_o not_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n answ._n small_a proof_n will_v serve_v the_o turn_n with_o such_o willing_a man_n what_o if_o dioscorus_n make_v they_o believe_v that_o that_o council_n do_v condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o cyril_n which_o he_o very_o think_v be_v the_o same_o which_o he_o defend_v and_o reject_v the_o nicene_n creed_n which_o he_o appeal_v to_o and_o that_o they_o divide_v christ_n may_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o neighbour_n egyptian_a bishop_n put_v they_o out_o of_o conceit_n with_o that_o council_n though_o they_o own_v no_o heresy_n do_v not_o your_o writer_n now_o ordinary_o quit_v they_o of_o such_o heresy_n do_v they_o that_o disow_v the_o council_n of_o constance_n or_o basil_n own_o all_o the_o error_n or_o schism_n which_o they_o condemn_v you_o justify_v the_o abassine_n when_o you_o tell_v man_n that_o your_o calumny_n have_v no_o better_o show_v of_o truth_n §_o 13._o erasmus_n lament_v the_o age_n when_o it_o become_v a_o matter_n of_o the_o high_a wit_n and_o subtlety_n to_o be_v a_o christian._n this_o seem_v about_o cyril_n day_n when_o
and_o that_o his_o primacy_n be_v n●…_n govern_v power_n nor_o give_v he_o by_o peter_n but_o by_o prince_n and_o council_n which_o he_o copiou●…_n prove_v to_o this_o he_o say_v 1._o that_o yet_o this_o may_v stand_v with_o the_o ●…ioque_fw-la be_v the_o first_o cause_n answ._n 1._o but_o the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o sole_a cause_n 2._o he_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v any_o cause_n but_o only_o a_o occasion_n and_o the_o pope_n usurpat●…on_n to_o be_v the_o only_a cause_n 3._o be_v it_o not_o know_v that_o the_o quarrel_n and_o breach_n begin_v long_o before_o about_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n though_o the_o greek_n do_v not_o then_o excommunicate_v you_o 2._o he_o say_v that_o by_o this_o it_o be_v imply_v that_o the_o greek_n agree_v with_o they_o in_o all_o thing_n save_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n answ._n do_v it_o follow_v that_o because_o he_o say_v that_o this_o only_a be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o division_n of_o your_o church_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o other_o disagreement_n all_o sober_a christian_n have_v learn_v to_o forbear_v excommunication_n and_o separation_n when_o yet_o there_o be_v many_o disagreement_n and_o we_o never_o deny_v but_o the_o greek_n agree_v more_o with_o you_o than_o they_o ought_v and_o special_o in_o strive_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a §_o 25._o to_o he_o repeat_v word_n that_o all_o these_o be_v not_o distinct_a congregation_n etc._n etc._n i_o tell_v he_o again_o that_o we_o be_v for_o no_o congregation_n distinct_a from_o christian_n as_o such_o to_o which_o he_o reply_v again_o 1._o that_o no_o heretic_n say_v they_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n as_o christian._n answ._n but_o if_o they_o do_v so_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n though_o they_o do_v not_o say_v so_o whoever_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n for_o somewhat_o essential_a to_o christianity_n depart_v from_o it_o as_o christian_a but_o you_o say_v yourself_o that_o all_o heretic_n depart_v from_o the_o church_n for_o somewhat_o essential_a to_o christianity_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n object_n then_o they_o be_v apostate_n answ._n apostate_n in_o the_o common_a sense_n be_v those_o that_o open_o renounce_v christianity_n in_o term_n as_o such_o but_o those_o that_o renounce_v any_o essential_a part_n be_v apostate_n real_o though_o but_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la and_o no●…_n the_o usual_a sense_n 2._o he_o intreat_v i_o to_o name_v he_o the_o first_o pope_n that_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o world_n answ._n 1._o there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o for_o the_o whole_a church_n never_o own_v he_o abussia_n persia_n india_n &c_n &c_n never_o be_v govern_v by_o he_o to_o this_o day_n and_o not_o past_o a_o three_o or_o four_o part_n be_v under_o he_o now_o 2._o but_o i_o must_v name_v the_o first_o that_o claim_v it_o have_v i_o live_v a_o thousand_o year_n at_o every_o pope_n elbow_n i_o will_v have_v venture_v to_o conjecture_v but_o it_o be_v a_o unreasonable_a motion_n to_o make_v to_o i_o that_o be_o not_o 70_o year_n old_a i_o must_v confess_v my_o ignorance_n i_o know_v not_o who_o be_v the_o first_o man_n that_o be_v for_o the_o sacrament_n in_o one_o kind_n only_o without_o the_o cup_n nor_o who_o first_o bring_v in_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n or_o image_n in_o church_n nor_o who_o first_o change_v the_o custom_n of_o adore_v without_o genuflexion_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n i_o leave_v such_o task_n to_o polydore_v virgil_n de_fw-fr invent._n rerum_fw-la little_o know_v i_o who_o be_v the_o first_o proud_a pope_n or_o heretical_a or_o simoniacal_a or_o infidel_n pope_n it_o satisfy_v i_o to_o know_v that_o 1._o it_o be_v long_o otherwise_o 2_o and_o that_o it_o come_v in_o by_o degree_n nemo_fw-la repentè_fw-fr sit_fw-la pess●…mus_fw-la 3._o and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o charge_n against_o the_o greek_n etc._n etc._n require_v no_o answer_n instead_o of_o do_v it_o he_o tell_v i_o he_o have_v prove_v there_o must_v be_v governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o if_o he_o have_v do_v as_o to_o any_o universal_a head_n he_o may_v have_v spare_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o labour_n §_o 26._o i_o think_v a_o while_n that_o he_o have_v answer_v all_o my_o book_n but_o i_o find_v that_o he_o slip_v over_o that_o which_o he_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o meddle_v with_o and_o among_o other_o these_o follow_a word_n you_o may_v judge_v why_o p._n 115._o many_o of_o the_o greek_n have_v be_v of_o brotherly_a charity_n to_o our_o church_n of_o late_a cyril_n i_o need_v not_o name_n to_o you_o who_o your_o party_n procure_v murder_v for_o be_v a_o protestant_n a_o worthy_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o send_v we_o by_o sir_n tho._n roe_n our_o alexandrian_n sept._n and_o who_o confession_n be_v publish_v and_o why_o be_v not_o he_o as_o much_o the_o greek_a church_n as_o jeremias_n meletius_n first_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o then_o of_o constantinople_n be_v high_o offend_v with_o the_o fiction_n of_o a_o submission_n of_o the_o alexandrian_a church_n to_o rome_n under_o a_o counterfeit_a patriarch_n gabriel_n name_n and_o write_v thus_o of_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o sigismond_n king_n of_o poland_n an._n 1600._o perspiciat_fw-la mojestas_fw-la tua_fw-la nos_fw-la cum_fw-la majoribus_fw-la etc._n etc._n your_o majesty_n may_v see_v that_o we_o with_o our_o ancestor_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o roman_a pope_n who_o you_o pray_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v nor_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constant._n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o apostolical_a stats_n there_o be_v one_o universal_a head_n which_o be_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n another_o there_o can_v be_v unless_o it_o be_v a_o two-headed_a body_n or_o rather_o a_o monster_n of_o a_o body_n you_o may_v see_v most_o serene_a king_n that_o i_o may_v say_v nothing_o of_o that_o florentine_a council_n as_o a_o thing_n worthy_a of_o silence_n that_o we_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o opinion_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n which_o by_o seven_o general_a council_n they_o consign_v and_o obsign_v to_o we_o but_o that_o they_o depart_v who_o be_v daily_o delight_v with_o novelty_n in_o the_o same_o letter_n he_o commend_v cyril_n and_o what_o can_v a_o protestant_n say_v more_o against_o the_o vice-christ_n and_o your_o novelty_n and_o the_o false_a pretend_a submission_n of_o the_o greek_n so_o much_o to_o that_o which_o he_o call_v his_o first_o part_n of_o his_o book_n a_o answer_n to_o w._n j_n second_o part_n of_o his_o reply_n §_o 1._o in_o this_o which_o he_o call_v his_o second_o part_n there_o be_v so_o much_o of_o mere_a word_n or_o altercation_n and_o of_o his_o false_a interpretation_n of_o some_o particular_a history_n and_o citation_n that_o shall_v i_o answer_v it_o full_o it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a snare_n to_o the_o reader_n 1._o to_o weary_v he_o 2._o to_o lose_v the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n in_o a_o wood_n of_o word_n 3._o and_o to_o suppose_v we_o both_o to_o strive_v about_o circumstance_n and_o so_o to_o cast_v it_o by_o that_o i_o shall_v not_o lose_v so_o much_o of_o my_o time_n to_o so_o ill_a a_o purpose_n all_o that_o i_o desire_v of_o the_o reader_n that_o will_v have_v a_o particular_a answer_n be_v 1._o that_o he_o remember_v the_o answer_n that_o be_v already_o give_v to_o much_o of_o it_o 2._o that_o he_o observe_v that_o almost_o all_o his_o citation_n signify_v no_o more_o than_o 1._o that_o both_o the_o roman_n and_o other_o patriarch_n be_v long_o strive_v who_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a and_o therefore_o intermeddle_v with_o as_o many_o business_n as_o they_o can_v 2._o that_o the_o supreme_a church-power_n be_v then_o place_v by_o consent_n and_o by_o the_o emperor_n in_o council_n the_o five_o patriarch_n ought_v to_o be_v at_o these_o council_n when_o they_o be_v universal_a as_o to_o the_o empire_n 3._o that_o rome_n have_v the_o first_o place_n in_o order_n of_o these_o patriarch_n or_o seat_n 4._o that_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n when_o oppress_v by_o arrlans_n and_o persecution_n do_v fly_v for_o council_n and_o countenance_n to_o the_o roman_a emperor_n who_o hold_v orthodox_n and_o to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n as_o the_o first_o patriarch_n and_o as_o have_v interest_n in_o the_o emperor_n he_o that_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a may_v help_v the_o oppress_v to_o some_o relief_n have_v a_o orthodox_n emperor_n by_o which_o mean_v constantius_n be_v constrain_v and_o athanasius_n restore_v by_o the_o threaten_n of_o a_o war_n by_o the_o western_a emperor_n and_o not_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o like_a aid_n be_v oft_o seek_v from_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n 5_o that_o this_o man_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o strain_v all_o such_o word_n as_o
those_o general_a council_n in_o all_o their_o decree_n constitution_n and_o canon_n intend_v to_o oblige_v all_o christian_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o thereby_o demonstrate_v themselves_o to_o have_v jurisdiction_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o never_o so_o much_o as_o insinuate_v that_o their_o authority_n be_v limit_v within_o the_o precinct_n of_o the_o empire_n answ._n 1._o i_o have_v prove_v the_o contrary_a at_o large_a already_o 2._o they_o may_v well_o commend_v their_o decree_n or_o judgement_n to_o all_o christian_n on_o two_o account_n 1._o for_o concord_n sake_n it_o be_v desirable_a that_o all_o christian_n shall_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v be_v of_o one_o mind_n and_o way_n 2._o ratione_fw-la rei_fw-la decret●…_n and_o so_o all_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o receive_v the_o same_o truth_n that_o one_o be_v bind_v to_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o poor_a city_n excommunicate_v a_o man_n just_o for_o heresy_n all_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o world_n that_o know_v it_o be_v bind_v to_o deny_v communion_n to_o that_o man_n and_o so_o cyprian_n commend_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o deny_v communion_n to_o felicissimus_n partly_o because_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o keep_v concord_n with_o all_o christian_n and_o order_n and_o partly_o because_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o avoid_v heretic_n and_o yet_o such_o a_o bishop_n be_v not_o governor_n of_o all_o other_o bishop_n nor_o cyprian_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v your_o proof_n §_o 26._o i._n thus_o say_v w._n 1_n the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n say_v their_o decree_n be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a world_n answ._n i_o do_v not_o mean_v to_o search_v so_o large_a a_o volumn_n to_o find_v where_o see_v you_o tell_v i_o not_o where_o when_o as_o he_o be_v unworthy_a to_o be_v dispute_v with_o that_o know_v not_o how_o common_o then_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v call_v totus_fw-la orbis_n and_o even_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o all_o the_o world_n be_v tax_v by_o augustus_n how_o oft_o do_v nazianzen_n complain_v that_o the_o bishop_n and_o council_n have_v distract_v and_o divide_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o also_o that_o all_o that_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v not_o a_o act_n of_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n e._n g._n the_o work_v of_o augustine_n chrysostome_n etc._n etc._n §_o 27._o ii_o say_v he_o thus_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n act._n 7._o declare_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n to_o have_v under_o its_o government_n arabia_n answ._n but_o do_v you_o think_v that_o no_o part_n of_o arabia_n be_v in_o the_o empire_n look_v but_o in_o the_o map_n of_o the_o empire_n if_o you_o have_v no_o other_o notice_n and_o you_o will_v be_v put_v hard_a to_o it_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o mean_v the_o rest_n of_o arabia_n §_o 28._o iii_o and_o act_v 16._o c._n 28._o say_v he_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o const._n shall_v have_v under_o he_o certain_a church_n in_o barbarous_a nation_n which_o you_o must_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v under_o the_o empire_n answ._n 1._o i_o think_v you_o must_v have_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o empire_n who_o undertake_v to_o prove_v it_o as_o you_o affirm_v it_o 2._o but_o see_v papist_n lie_v man_n salvation_n upon_o such_o skill_n in_o history_n cosmography_n and_o chronology_n which_o this_o great_a disputer_n have_v so_o little_a of_o himself_o we_o must_v study_v it_o better_o for_o the_o time_n come_v and_o i_o do_v full_o prove_v to_o you_o before_o that_o the_o sauromat●…_n many_o of_o the_o scythian_n and_o goth_n be_v conquer_v and_o in_o the_o empire_n and_o barbarian_n be_v in_o the_o empire_n and_o by_o the_o way_n note_v 1._o that_o this_o ●…uncil_n of_o chalcedon_n even_o write_v to_o leo_n bishop_n of_o rome_n tell_v he_o that_o they_o be_v call_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o sanction_n of_o the_o most_o pious_a emperor_n not_o mention_v any_o call_n of_o leo_n 2._o that_o the_o emperor_n martian_a in_o his_o decree_n against_o heretic_n and_o for_o this_o council_n sai_z all_z man_n must_v believe_v as_o athanasius_n theophylus_fw-la and_o cyril_n believe_v not_o name_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o cyril_n praefuit_fw-la concilio_n ephesino_n not_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v it_o or_o cyril_n as_o his_o vicar_n and_o that_o the_o council-bishop_n contemptuous_o against_o the_o roman_n cry_v out_o they_o that_o gainsay_v let_v they_o walk_v to_o rome_n and_o stand_v to_o their_o last_o canon_n against_o the_o pope_n dissent_n §_o 29._o iu._n next_o he_o say_v nicephorus_n l._n 5._o c._n 16._o say_v that_o leo_n the_o emperor_n write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o province_n together_o circularibus_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la literis_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la missis_fw-la leo_fw-la haec_fw-la sic_fw-la ad_fw-la omnes_fw-la episcopos_fw-la misit_fw-la which_o he_o account_v be_v above_o a_o thousand_o to_o have_v they_o subscribe_v to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n answ._n some_o man_n perceive_v not_o when_o they_o consute_n themselves_o 1._o i_o tell_v you_o totus_fw-la orbis_n be_v a_o common_a title_n of_o the_o empire_n 2._o have_v leo_n any_o power_n out_o of_o the_o empire_n his_o command_n show_v that_o they_o be_v his_o subject_n that_o he_o write_v to_o 3._o be_v any_o call_v or_o write_v to_o under_o the_o name_n of_o province_n but_o the_o roman_a province_n 4._o do_v you_o think_v that_o there_o be_v not_o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o bishop_n in_o the_o empire_n yea_o many_o thousand_o if_o poor_a ireland_n have_v as_o many_o hundred_o as_o ninius_n speak_v of_o 5._o but_o remember_v hence_o that_o if_o all_o bishop_n be_v write_v to_o than_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v write_v to_o to_o subscribe_v the_o 28_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o he_o refuse_v as_o papist_n say_v but_o indeed_o the_o epistle_n that_o niceph._n there_o mention_v c._n 16._o be_v but_o to_o inquire_v of_o all_o the_o bishop_n whether_o they_o stand_v to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n or_o no_o and_o what_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n they_o be_v for_o to_o save_v the_o call_n of_o a_o new_a council_n and_o it_o be_v plain_a he_o write_v only_o to_o his_o subject_n §_o 30._o v._n next_o he_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o second_o armenia_n which_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v out_o of_o the_o empire_n write_v a_o answer_n and_o adelphus_n bishop_n of_o arabia_n subscribe_v among_o the_o rest_n to_o this_o epistle_n answ._n 1._o he_o tell_v i_o ●…ot_v where_o to_o find_v any_o of_o this_o in_o nicephorus_n there_o i_o find_v it_o not_o 2._o but_o if_o he_o know_v not_o that_o part_n of_o both_o the_o armenia_n be_v roman_a province_n he_o may_v see_v it_o in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o in_o the_o map_n and_o history_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o of_o arabia_n i_o speak_v before_o §_o 31._o vi_o he_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o second_o messia_n which_o you_o must_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v then_o under_o the_o empire_n write_v that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a deliver_v the_o faith_n toti_fw-la terrarum_fw-la orbi_fw-la and_o style_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o head_n of_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v gather_v by_o pope_n leo_n command_n answ._n here_o be_v neither_o matter_n nor_o authority_n worthy_a a_o answer_n 1._o he_o cit_v no_o author_n for_o what_o he_o say_v 2._o whether_o he_o mean_v messua_n or_o messia_n or_o messina_n they_o be_v all_o in_o the_o empire_n but_o what_o he_o mean_v i_o know_v not_o since_o i_o find_v in_o his_o errat_fw-la messia_n r._n toti_n but_o where_o or_o what_o toti_n mean_v my_o cosmographer_n tell_v i_o not_o if_o it_o be_v tottaium_fw-la that_o he_o mean_v it_o be_v a_o city_n of_o bythinia_n under_o the_o archbishop_n of_o nice_a but_o it_o seem_v he_o dare_v not_o say_v it_o be_v in_o the_o empire_n but_o instead_o of_o prove_v it_o in_o i_o must_v prove_v it_o out_o without_o know_v place_n or_o author_n 2._o he_o that_o yet_o understand_v not_o the_o roman_n terrarum_fw-la orbem_fw-la and_o he_o that_o read_v history_n can_v believe_v that_o pope_n leo_n call_v the_o council_n at_o chalcedon_n be_v not_o to_o be_v convince_v by_o i_o if_o he_o maintain_v that_o the_o turk_n call_v it_o he_o tell_v we_o out_o of_o no_o cite_a author_n of_o a_o epistle_n subscribe_v by_o dita_fw-la bishop_n of_o odyss●…_n in_o scythia_n which_o i_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o till_o i_o know_v the_o epistle_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v know_v that_o odyssus_n be_v a_o city_n of_o mysia_n near_o the_o euxine_a sea_n within_o the_o empire_n §_o 32._o vii_o his_o last_o instance_n be_v considerable_a viz._n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n
the_o leprosy_n of_o some_o christian_n he_o must_v know_v whether_o all_o the_o church_n be_v not_o leprous_a then_o 2._o and_o whether_o man_n can_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n have_v communion_n with_o any_o answ._n 1._o he_o that_o say_v he_o have_v no_o sin_n be_v alyar_n say_v st._n john_n all_o christian_n and_o therefore_o all_o church_n be_v defile_v with_o sin_n 2._o all_o be_v not_o equal_o defile_v i_o have_v tell_v you_o that_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v none_o 3._o we_o must_v not_o separate_v from_o all_o church_n that_o have_v sin_n but_o we_o must_v not_o wilful_o sin_n for_o their_o communion_n and_o we_o must_v join_v local_o with_o the_o best_a we_o can_v and_o in_o spirit_n join_v with_o all_o as_o far_o as_o they_o join_v with_o christ_n be_v not_o this_o plain_a and_o sufficient_a to_o your_o cavil_v §_o 5._o he_o say_v p._n 423._o that_o our_o external_a profession_n in_o the_o particular_n of_o our_o belief_n or_o rather_o disbelief_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n show_v our_o general_a profession_n of_o christianity_n to_o be_v false_a as_o the_o arrian_n be_v answ._n what_o be_v easy_a than_o to_o say_v so_o but_o where_o be_v your_o proof_n §_o 6._o after_o a_o repetition_n of_o his_o talk_n against_o christ_n as_o no_o visible_a head_n he_o cavil_v at_o the_o form_n of_o my_o first_o argument_n which_o be_v this_o the_o body_n of_o christian_n on_o earth_n subject_v to_o christ_n their_o head_n have_v be_v in_o its_o part_n visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christian_n on_o earth_n subject_v to_o christ_n their_o head_n be_v the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o th●…_n day_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n and_o first_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o form_n because_o it_o have_v never_o a_o universal_a proposition_n answ._n this_o be_v the_o man_n that_o will_v not_o dispute_v but_o in_o mere_a syllogism_n what_o need_v i_o a_o universal_a proposition_n if_o you_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o cephas_n be_v peter_n or_o peter_n be_v a_o apostle_n of_o the_o first_o place_n must_v you_o have_v a_o universal_a proposition_n what_o universal_a must_v there_o be_v above_o the_o body_n of_o christian_n etc._n etc._n 2._o he_o say_v that_o the_o word_n those_o form_n require_v shall_v have_v be_v all_o those_o when_o as_o there_o be_v never_o a_o those_o at_o all_o in_o the_o argument_n be_v not_o this_o a_o accurate_a reformer_n of_o syllogism_n that_o amend_v term_n that_o be_v not_o write_v and_o talk_v like_o a_o dreamer_n of_o he_o know_v not_o what_o but_o what_o be_v the_o all_n that_o the_o man_n will_v have_v have_v be_v it_o all_o those_o body_n of_o christian_n when_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v that_o christ_n have_v but_o one_o political_a body_n if_o i_o have_v be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o world_n that_o protestant_n be_v part_n of_o have_v be_v visible_a since_o adam_n or_o that_o the_o god_n the_o protestant_n worship_n be_v almighty_a must_v i_o have_v say_v all_o those_o world_n and_o all_o those_o god_n nay_o have_v i_o say_v but_o whatsoever_o world_n or_o whatsoever_o god_n it_o have_v sound_v ill_o among_o man_n that_o be_v agree_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o sure_o a_o expository_n medium_n that_o be_v but_o notius_fw-la be_v enough_o next_o he_o say_v that_o i_o put_v more_o in_o the_o medium_n of_o the_o major_a than_o in_o the_o medium_n of_o the_o minor_a and_o so_o it_o have_v four_o term_n answ._n wonderful_a this_o be_v the_o man_n that_o dispute_v with_o our_o two_o great_a logician_n and_o public_a professor_n of_o cambridge_n bishop_n gunning_n and_o bishop_n peirson_n and_o as_o a_o triumpher_n print_v the_o dispute_n and_o challenge_v man_n in_o london_n to_o syllogistical_a combat_n and_o now_o see_v how_o he_o talk_v 1._o he_o call_v that_o my_o medium_n that_o be_v no_o medium_n at_o all_o but_o the_o predicate_a 2._o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o minor_n where_o that_o predicate_v be_v not_o nor_o aught_o to_o be_v but_o another_o 3._o he_o take_v a_o expository_n parenthesis_n which_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o proposition_n for_o a_o addition_n that_o make_v ●…our_n term_n when_o i_o prove_v the_o church_n visible_a to_o prevent_v his_o cavil_n i_o put_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n as_o a_o margin_n in_o its_o part_n because_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o church_n be_v not_o see_v by_o any_o mortal_a man_n no_o not_o by_o the_o pope_n that_o pretend_v to_o rule_v it_o all_o and_o this_o no_o man_n controvert_v if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o there_o be_v less_o in_o the_o conclusion_n than_o in_o the_o premise_n he_o have_v speak_v sense_n though_o impertinet_fw-la while_o there_o be_v as_o much_o as_o be_v in_o the_o question_n 2_o he_o say_v i_o make_v the_o predicate_a of_o the_o minor_a the_o subject_n of_o the_o conclusion_n and_o then_o say_v this_n be_v a_o hopeful_a beginning_n answ._n o_o rare_a triumphant_a disputer_n why_o shall_v i_o not_o make_v the_o predicate_a of_o the_o minor_a the_o subject_n of_o the_o conclusion_n what_o law_n or_o reason_n be_v against_o it_o when_o i●…_n be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o question_n my_o argument_n be_v a_o re_fw-mi definitâ_fw-la ad_fw-la rem_fw-la denominatam_fw-la as_o question_v the_o definition_n or_o res_fw-la quà_fw-la definita_fw-la be_v my_o medium_n how_o ridiculo●…s_n have_v this_o aristarchus_n make_v himself_o in_o his_o logic_n will_v not_o this_o dispute_v have_v be_v very_o edify_v to_o such_o as_o the_o lady_n that_o he_o and_o i_o be_v once_o to_o deal_v with_o when_o he_o will_v have_v bargain_v that_o never_o a_o word_n shall_v be_v speak_v by_o i_o nor_o write_v but_o in_o a_o syllogism_n as_o bad_a as_o popery_n be_v i_o hope_v it_o have_v some_o man_n of_o more_o ingenuity_n and_o honesty_n then_o wilful_o to_o delude_v the_o ignorant_a at_o these_o low_a and_o sordid_a rate_n §_o 7._o but_o from_o his_o play_n he_o turn_v in_o earnest_a to_o deny_v my_o major_n and_o say_v that_o protestant_n be_v no_o part_n of_o that_o church_n on_o earth_n of_o which_o christ_n be_v head_n and_o yet_o many_o of_o their_o doctor_n say_v that_o they_o that_o have_v no_o explicit_a belief_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n but_o believe_v only_o a_o god_n the_o rewarder_n of_o work_n be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o no_o christian_n be_v save_v papist_n just_o the_o donatist_n and_o worse_o than_o the_o quaker_n and_o anabaptist_n my_o argument_n those_o that_o profess_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o be_v member_n of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christian_n on_o earth_n subject_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n but_o protestant_n profess_v etc._n etc._n here_o 1._o he_o want_v form_n also_o all_n be_v want_v as_o if_o a_o definition_n be_v not_o universal_a or_o equipollent_a but_o if_o all_n be_v in_o he_o deny_v it_o because_o they_o may_v destroy_v the_o faith_n by_o a_o error_n answ._n he_o that_o so_o err_v as_o to_o deny_v any_o one_o essential_a part_n do_v not_o true_o profess_v to_o hold_v that_o essential_a part_n and_o so_o not_o the_o essence_n as_o he_o that_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n or_o man_n and_o yet_o will_v say_v in_o general_n that_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o one_o that_o be_v not_o god_n or_o not_o man_n be_v the_o messiah_n which_o be_v not_o a_o profession_n of_o all_o essential_a to_o christianity_n but_o if_o he_o true_o profess_v all_o that_o be_v essential_a and_o ignorant_o think_v some_o error_n consistent_a with_o those_o essential_o which_o by_o consequence_n cross_v some_o of_o they_o and_o will_v abhor_v that_o error_n if_o he_o know_v it_o inconsistent_a this_o man_n be_v still_o a_o christian_n or_o else_o it_o be_v doubt_n whether_o there_o be_v one_o in_o the_o world_n if_o those_o doctor_n say_v true_a that_o say_v that_o theology_n be_v so_o harmonious_a a_o frame_n that_o the_o least_o moral_a error_n do_v by_o consequence_n cross_a and_o subvert_v fundamental_a truth_n certain_o abundance_n of_o such_o do_v so_o as_o be_v collect_v by_o montaltus_n and_o mr._n clarkson_n out_o of_o your_o jesuit_n and_o school_v doctor_n and_o as_o you_o find_v in_o one_o another_o but_o he_o bid_v i_o prove_v my_o major_n mark_v reader_n what_o i_o be_o put_v to_o prove_v 1._o either_o that_o profession_n denominate_v a_o professor_n it_o be_v only_a christian_n as_o visible_a by_o profession_n in_o question_n 2._o or_o that_o all_o the_o essential_a part_n do_v
the_o arrian_n yea_o and_o of_o marcian_n leo_n zeno_n anastaslus_fw-la justine_n almost_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o empire_n continue_v charge_v each_o other_o with_o heresy_n and_o council_n charge_v and_o condemn_v council_n bishop_n depose_v and_o curse_v bishop_n and_o monk_n as_o their_o soldier_n fight_v it_o out_o to_o blood_n when_o the_o obey_a or_o curse_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n divide_v the_o bishop_n for_o many_o prince_n reign_v and_o when_o one_o part_n call_v the_o other_o nestorian_n and_o the_o other_o call_v they_o eutychian_o almost_o every_o where_o and_o when_o after_o that_o the_o monothelite_n cause_n be_v in_o many_o emperor_n reign_n uppermost_a one_o while_n and_o down_o another_o and_o navicula_fw-la petri_n that_o alone_o escape_v before_o be_v thus_o drown_v by_o honorius_n if_o council_n belie_v he_o not_o and_o pope_n with_o the_o rest_n when_o the_o very_a same_o bishop_n as_o at_o ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n go_v one_o way_n in_o one_o council_n and_o another_o way_n in_o the_o next_o and_o subscribe_v to_o one_o edict_n e._n g._n of_o basiliscus_n and_o quick_o to_o the_o contrary_a of_o another_o and_o cry_v 〈◊〉_d we_o do_v it_o through_o fear_n how_o shall_v we_o then_o know_v by_o father_n bishop_n and_o council_n what_o be_v their_o concordant_a commentary_n of_o the_o scripture_n 4._o i_o ask_v you_o what_o exposition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v it_o that_o we_o profess_v to_o differ_v from_o for_o our_o novelty_n name_v they_o if_o you_o can_v either_o by_o the_o universal_a church_n you_o mean_v proper_o all_o christian_n or_o most_o if_o all_o alas_o when_o and_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v their_o agreement_n in_o any_o more_o than_o we_o hold_v with_o they_o if_o most_o do_v we_o not_o know_v that_o the_o most_o two_o part_n to_o one_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o your_o church_n do_v not_o the_o greek_n once_o a_o year_n excommunicate_a or_o curse_v you_o to_o tell_v we_o now_o that_o above_o two_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v none_o of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o that_o the_o three_o part_n be_v that_o universal_a which_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v no_o christian_n be_v word_n that_o deserve_v indignation_n and_o not_o belief_n and_o without_o the_o medium_n of_o sword_n and_o flame_n and_o torment_a inquisition_n on_o one_o side_n and_o great_a bishopric_n and_o abbey_n wealth_n ease_n and_o domination_n on_o the_o other_o have_v long_o ago_o be_v scorn_v out_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n §_o 10._o but_o he_o also_o deny_v that_o we_o believe_v with_o a_o save_v divine_a faith_n any_o of_o the_o say_a mystery_n and_o that_o our_o profession_n general_a and_o particular_a affirm_v it_o answ._n it_o be_v like_o the_o devil_n the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n will_v deny_v it_o too_o of_o our_o heart_n we_o will_v not_o enter_v a_o dispute_n of_o our_o profession_n let_v our_o book_n be_v witness_n reader_n can_v thou_o believe_v that_o we_o profess_v not_o to_o believe_v any_o christian_a verity_n with_o a_o divine_a faith_n yea_o but_o the_o man_n mean_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o divine_a faith_n if_o it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o beleif_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o party_n and_o how_o then_o shall_v we_o believe_v the_o pope_n own_o authority_n §_o 11._o ii_o my_o ad_fw-la argument_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o hold_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n be_v those_o that_o profess_v as_o much_o and_o much_o more_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n as_o the_o catechuman_n be_v ordinary_o teach_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o the_o competentes_fw-la at_o baptism_n do_v profess_v do_v profess_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o but_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n to_o this_o he_o call_v for_o form_n again_o as_o if_o here_o be_v no_o universal_a and_o then_o deny_v the_o major_a but_o his_o word_n show_v that_o indeed_o it_o be_v the_o minor_a because_o the_o catechuman_n profess_v to_o believe_v implicit_o all_o that_o be_v teach_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o that_o article_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a church_n which_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o answ._n a_o unproved_a fiction_n on_o both_o part_n 1._o show_v we_o in_o father_n council_n or_o any_o true_a church-record_n that_o catechuman_n be_v then_o use_v to_o make_v any_o other_o exposition_n of_o those_o word_n than_o we_o do_v do_v they_o ever_o profess_v that_o a_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v the_o fide_fw-la do_v they_o not_o call_v many_o of_o those_o council_n general_n though_o violent_a and_o erroneous_a which_o they_o curse_v the_o great_a doubt_n than_o be_v which_o party_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o christian_n then_o judge_v not_o of_o faith_n by_o the_o churchman_n but_o of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o faith_n else_o they_o have_v not_o so_o oft_o reject_v and_o hereticate_v many_o pope_n patriarch_n and_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o they_o do_v 2._o and_o protestant_n deny_v no_o article_n which_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ubique_fw-la et_fw-la semper_fw-la as_o lerinen_n speak_v be_v account_v necessary_a to_o ●…ation_n yea_o it_o be_v one_o reason_n why_o they_o can_v be_v papist_n because_o most_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v against_o the_o papacy_n and_o all_o be_v against_o it_o or_o without_o it_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ._n let_v the_o reader_n peruse_v cyril_n hieros_n catech._n august_n and_o all_o other_o that_o give_v we_o a_o account_n of_o the_o church_n catechism_n and_o see_v whether_o he_o can_v find_v in_o it_o i_o believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v make_v by_o christ_n the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o be_v infallible_a in_o himself_o or_o with_o his_o council_n and_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v all_o that_o they_o say_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o they_o say_v it_o or_o else_o we_o can_v be_v save_v but_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a way_n to_o become_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n if_o they_o can_v persuade_v all_o man_n to_o believe_v that_o none_o but_o their_o subject_n can_v be_v save_v 3._o and_o what_o a_o useless_a thing_n to_o they_o make_v god_n word_n that_o they_o may_v set_v up_o their_o own_o exposition_n in_o its_o stead_n we_o know_v that_o the_o word_n suppose_v that_o the_o ignorant_a must_v have_v teacher_n without_o teach_v child_n can_v so_o much_o as_o learn_v to_o speak_v and_o oportet_fw-la discentem_fw-la credere_fw-la fide_fw-la humanâ_fw-la that_o be_v he_o must_v suppose_v his_o teacher_n wise_a than_o himself_o or_o else_o how_o can_v he_o judge_v he_o fit_a to_o teach_v he_o but_o what_o be_v teach_v but_o teach_v the_o learner_n to_o know_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o the_o teacher_n do_v by_o the_o same_o evidence_n be_v it_o only_o to_o know_v what_o the_o teacher_n hold_v without_o know_v why_o if_o so_o must_v we_o know_v it_o by_o word_n or_o write_v if_o by_o word_n only_o when_o and_o where_o shall_v every_o man_n and_o woman_n come_v to_o be_v catechize_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o be_v by_o all_o the_o christian_n world_n or_o be_v every_o priest_n the_o universal_a church_n or_o be_v he_o infallible_a and_o how_o come_v word_n speak_v to_o be_v more_o intelligible_a than_o word_n write_v do_v writing_n make_v they_o unintelligible_a why_o then_o be_v their_o council_n and_o commentary_n write_v but_o if_o write_v will_v serve_v why_o not_o god_n writing_n as_o well_o as_o they_o if_o god_n say_v thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n be_v not_o these_o word_n intelligible_a till_o a_o pope_n expound_v they_o when_o the_o pope_n permit_v his_o casuist_n to_o expound_v they_o so_o as_o that_o love_v god_n once_o a_o month_n or_o once_o a_o year_n will_v serve_v for_o salvation_n and_o that_o attrition_n which_o be_v repeat_v only_o out_o of_o fear_n with_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n will_v also_o serve_v can_v a_o man_n be_v save_v that_o believe_v repent_v and_o love_v god_n upon_o the_o bare_a command_n of_o god_n and_o scripture_n without_o hear_v what_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o council_n say_v if_o i_o make_v to_o myself_o no_o grave_v image_n so_o as_o to_o bow_v down_o and_o worship_n towards_o it_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n will_v this_o damn_v i_o because_o i_o receive_v not_o the_o papist_n obliteration_n or_o contradiction_n of_o this_o commandment_n as_o a_o exposition_n if_o all_o the_o docree_n of_o council_n be_v as_o necessary_a as_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n why_o be_v not_o the_o council_n read_v in_o the_o
10._o ad_fw-la 11._o 5._o scatus_fw-la in_o prolegom_n in_o sect_n 1._o 6._o greg._n armin._n in_o prol._n e._n g._n q._n 1._o art_n 2._o resp._n fol._n 3_o &_o 4._o 7._o guil._n parisian_n de_fw-fr legib._n c._n 16._o p._n 46._o 8._o bellarmine_n again_o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la li._n 10._o c._n 10._o ad_fw-la arg_n 5._o etc._n etc._n and_o then_o i_o most_o full_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a church-doctor_n but_o to_o all_o these_o he_o give_v such_o frivolous_a answer_n that_o it_o irk_v i_o to_o weary_a the_o reader_n by_o repeat_v and_o answer_v they_o and_o he_o that_o will_v faithful_o peruse_v the_o author_n word_n i_o think_v will_n either_o need_v no_o other_o confutation_n of_o he_o or_o be_v uncapable_a of_o understand_v one_o when_o he_o see_v it_o the_o fore-confuted_n contradiction_n of_o sufficient_a explicit_a and_o yet_o not_o sufficient_a implicit_a be_v the_o chief_a and_o next_o a_o vain_a supposition_n that_o to_o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o all_o theological_a point_n and_o conclusion_n be_v less_o than_o to_o say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o any_o of_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n exposition_n he_o deny_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n as_o a_o rule_n and_o yet_o their_o council_n need_v exposition_n too_o §_o 22._o iii_o my_o 3d._a argument_n for_o our_o church_n perpetual_a visibility_n be_v if_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o christian_n though_o not_o as_o papal_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n than_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v their_o own_o therefore_o they_o may_v not_o deny_v the_o consequent_a here_o he_o want_v form_n again_o because_o as_o christian_n be_v in_o the_o antecedent_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sequel_n answ._n he_o may_v have_v see_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o expository_n term_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n and_o so_o the_o same_o exposition_n in_o the_o consequent_a be_v suppose_v next_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o fallacy_n a_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la answ._n so_o then_o the_o church_n as_o christian_n be_v not_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la but_o we_o that_o know_v no_o other_o profess_v to_o be_v of_o no_o other_o nor_o to_o prove_v the_o visibility_n of_o any_o other_o than_o the_o church_n as_o christian._n let_v they_o prove_v more_o that_o pretend_v to_o any_o other_o next_o he_o say_v that_o the_o protestant_n have_v be_v visible_a as_o christian_n be_v all_o that_o can_v be_v pretend_v and_o yet_o that_o also_o he_o deny_v for_o they_o believe_v not_o one_o article_n with_o a_o infallible_a supernatural_a divine_a faith_n answ._n 1._o the_o question_n be_v whether_o they_o profess_v not_o so_o to_o do_v nay_o rather_o whether_o their_o objective_a faith_n that_o be_v all_o the_o creed_n and_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o infallible_a of_o supernatural_a revelation_n and_o divine_a he_o that_o deny_v this_o seem_v a_o infidel_n but_o if_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n must_v have_v a_o actual_a subjective_n faith_n that_o be_v of_o supernatural_a divine_a infusion_n then_o 1._o no_o hypocrite_n be_v a_o church-member_n 2._o and_o no_o man_n can_v know_v who_o be_v a_o church-member_n beside_o himself_o 3._o and_o so_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v invisible_a this_o be_v clear_a 2._o i_o must_v not_o too_o oft_o write_v the_o same_o thing_n if_o the_o reader_n will_v peruse_v a_o small_a tract_n of_o my_o call_v the_o certainty_n of_o christianity_n without_o popery_n he_o shall_v soon_o see_v whether_o the_o papist_n faith_n or_o we_o be_v the_o more_o certain_a and_o divine_a of_o which_o also_o i_o have_v say_v more_o in_o my_o treatise_n call_v the_o safe_a religion_n and_o mr._n pool_n in_o his_o nullity_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n §_o 23._o i_o here_o show_v that_o have_v prove_v our_o visibility_n as_o christian_a i_o need_v not_o prove_v a_o visibility_n as_o papal_n any_o more_o than_o he_o that_o will_v prove_v his_o humane_a genealogy_n have_v some_o leprous_a ancestor_n need_v to_o prove_v that_o all_o be_v leprous_a here_o he_o deny_v popery_n to_o be_v leprosy_n and_o again_o false_o tell_v we_o that_o if_o it_o be_v so_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v leprous_a which_o need_v no_o more_o confutation_n than_o be_v oft_o give_v it_o §_o 24._o he_o tell_v i_o how_o a_o 1500_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o possession_n and_o we_o dispossess_v he_o without_o order_n etc._n etc._n answ._n a_o old_a cant_n but_o 1._o i_o have_v full_o prove_v that_o he_o never_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n 2._o nor_o in_o the_o empire_n or_o any_o other_o prince_n dominion_n but_o by_o humane_a donation_n and_o consent_n as_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v in_o england_n 3._o and_o that_o they_o that_o give_v he_o that_o power_n may_v on_o just_a reason_n take_v it_o away_o and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o another_o prince_n country_n can_v stand_v here_o by_o his_o authority_n when_o he_o have_v lose_v the_o government_n of_o england_n himself_o §_o 25._o iv._o my_o four_o argument_n add_v more_o than_o my_o thesis_n require_v viz._n if_o there_o have_v be_v since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n a_o christian_a church_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o roman_a pope_n as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o universal_a head_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n than_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a both_o in_o its_o be_v and_o in_o its_o freedom_n from_o popery_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la so_o be_v the_o consequent_a to_o this_o 1._o he_o want_v the_o word_n ever_o in_o the_o antecedent_n and_o yet_o before_o abate_v it_o but_o he_o know_v that_o since_o be_v put_v for_o ever_o since_o 2._o he_o say_v i_o suppose_v that_o the_o sole_a denial_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n constitute_v the_o church_n whereof_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n answ._n in_o despite_n of_o my_o frequent_a profession_n to_o the_o contrary_a who_o still_o tell_v he_o that_o our_o christianity_n and_o relation_n to_o christ_n and_o one_o another_o make_v we_o church-member_n and_o our_o freedom_n from_o the_o papacy_n be_v our_o renunciation_n of_o a_o usurper_n §_o 26._o i_o prove_v my_o antecedent_n 1._o from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n can_v 28_o which_o he_o answer_v as_o before_o where_o he_o be_v consute_v §_o 27._o 2._o my_o 2d_o proof_n be_v from_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n tertullian_n cyprian_n athan._n nazianzen_n nissene_n basil_n optatus_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n that_o use_v not_o this_o argument_n of_o pope_n power_n over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o of_o divine_a right_n to_o confute_v the_o heretic_n that_o they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o when_o two_o word_n have_v expeditious_o do_v all_o if_o this_o have_v then_o be_v believe_v here_o he_o say_v their_o author_n have_v prove_v that_o the_o father_n do_v so_o answ._n soon_o say_v and_o as_o soon_o deny_v the_o book_n be_v in_o our_o hand_n as_o well_o as_o you_o i_o will_v now_o instance_n but_o in_o cyprian_n and_o the_o african_a church_n in_o his_o day_n and_o in_o augustine_n and_o the_o same_o church_n in_o his_o day_n 1._o do_v cyprian_n and_o his_o council_n believe_v stephen_n universal_a monarchy_n when_o he_o oppose_v his_o judgement_n with_o so_o much_o vehemency_n and_o set_v the_o scripture_n against_o his_o plea_n from_o tradition_n let_v he_o that_o will_v read_v his_o epistle_n of_o this_o too_o long_o to_o be_v recite_v believe_v it_o if_o he_o can_v and_o when_o he_o twit_v his_o arrogance_n in_o council_n with_o nemo_fw-la nostrum_fw-la se_fw-la dicit_fw-la episcopum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la 2._o the_o plea_n of_o aurelius_n augustine_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n i_o have_v former_o recite_v of_o which_o harding_n say_v that_o the_o african_n seduce_v by_o aurelius_n continue_v twenty_o year_n in_o schism_n from_o rome_n and_o do_v augustine_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n then_o believe_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n even_o in_o the_o empire_n i_o do_v plain_o show_v that_o if_o the_o donatis●…s_n novatian_o and_o all_o such_o sect_n have_v believe_v the_o roman_a sovereignty_n and_o infallibility_n they_o have_v not_o so_o differ_v from_o they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o the_o father_n will_v have_v take_v the_o near_a way_n and_o write_v their_o volume_n to_o convince_v they_o that_o this_o papal_a rule_n be_v it_o that_o must_v end_v all_o their_o controversy_n instead_o of_o write_v voluminous_o from_o scripture_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o
cause_n which_o they_o do_v not_o §_o 28._o my_o 3d._a proof_n be_v this_o the_o tradition_n witness_v by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n say_v that_o the_o papal_a vicarship_n or_o sovereignty_n be_v a_o innovation_n and_o usurpation_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v many_o hundred_o year_n without_o it_o therefore_o there_o be_v then_o no_o such_o papat_fw-la church_n here_o the_o man_n be_v angry_a and_o say_v it_o be_v a_o abominable_a untruth_n set_v down_o by_o a_o forehead_n of_o brass_n a_o man_n in_o his_o right_a wit_n will_v not_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o utter_v so_o loud_a a_o falsehood_n and_o all_o the_o world_n will_v see_v that_o i_o be_o one_o of_o the_o most_o unsufferabl_a out-facers_a of_o truth_n and_o asserter_n of_o open_a falsehood_n that_o ever_o set_a pen_n to_o paper_n yea_o it_o bring_v in_o the_o talk_n of_o rebellion_n against_o his_o majesty_n etc._n etc._n answ._n the_o apprehension_n of_o man_n be_v very_o different_a when_o read_v its_o like_a the_o same_o book_n leave_v i_o past_a doubt_n on_o one_o side_n and_o he_o so_o vehement_o confident_a on_o the_o other_o my_o proof_n be_v this_o 1._o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v now_o deny_v the_o papal_a universal_a sovereignty_n 2._o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v suppose_v and_o say_v that_o they_o hold_v herein_o to_o the_o ancient_a truth_n which_o be_v deliver_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n 3._o therefore_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v hold_v that_o the_o ancient_a truth_n deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n do_v teach_v they_o to_o deny_v the_o pope_n universal_a sovereignty_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v a_o innovation_n and_o usurpation_n i._o as_o to_o the_o first_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o present_a fact_n such_o as_o whether_o most_o of_o england_n speak_v english_a 1._o that_o the_o great_a empire_n of_o abassia_n renounce_v the_o pope_n and_o plead_v tradition_n for_o it_o godignus_n the_o jesuit_n beside_o other_o full_o testify_v and_o justify_v pet._n maffeius_n ribade_n nica_n and_o other_o jesuit_n against_o 〈◊〉_d new_a author_n that_o false_o say_v they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o take_v the_o roman_n for_o nestorian_a heretic_n p._n 318._o 328._o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o they_o resolve_v never_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o that_o tell_v they_o otherwise_o misinform_v they_o yea_o say_v one_o of_o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 330._o i_o think_v the_o emperor_n have_v rather_o be_v under_o the_o hard_a yoke_n of_o the_o saracen_n than_o under_o the_o mild_a and_o gentle_a empire_n emperor_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n it_o be_v true_a that_o many_o error_n they_o have_v and_o many_o more_o be_v charge_v on_o they_o which_o they_o deny_v and_o believe_v that_o dioscorus_n be_v the_o true_a follower_n of_o cyril_n and_o the_o council_n of_o ephes._n and_o that_o leo_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v nestorian_n of_o which_o more_o anon_o they_o be_v for_o dioscorus_n against_o leo_n and_o the_o council_n but_o few_o if_o any_o of_o they_o understand_v the_o bottom_n of_o that_o controversy_n and_o the_o emperor_n tell_v the_o jesuit_n that_o he_o false_o charge_v error_n on_o they_o and_o his_o mother_n say_v see_v your_o faith_n and_o we_o do_v nothing_o differ_v but_o be_v the_o same_o why_o do_v you_o write_v to_o trouble_v quiet_a mind_n without_o cause_n the_o jesuit_n answer_v i_o certain_o affirm_v to_o your_o majesty_n that_o if_o you_o have_v no_o other_o error_n this_o one_o that_o you_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n be_v enough_o and_o too_o much_o to_o your_o everlasting_a destruction_n ii_o to_o this_o she_o reply_v that_o she_o and_o her_o country_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n and_o first_o to_o christ_n himself_o the_o jesuit_n answer_v i_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o christ_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o his_o vicar_n say_v she_o neither_o i_o nor_o i_o deny_v obedience_n to_o st._n peter_n we_o be_v now_o in_o the_o same_o faith_n that_o we_o be_v in_o from_o the_o beginning_n if_o that_o be_v not_o right_a why_o for_o so_o many_o age_n and_o generation_n be_v there_o no_o man_n find_v that_o will_v warn_v we_o of_o our_o error_n he_o answer_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o in_o the_o year_n pass_v send_v tea●…hers_n into_o abassia_n &c_n &c_n she_o answer_v to_o change_v the_o old_a custom_n and_o rite_n and_o receive_v new_a one_o be_v a_o matter_n full_a of_o danger_n and_o offence_n he_o answer_v that_o their_o faith_n be_v old_a and_o have_v nothing_o new_a etc._n etc._n p._n 323_o 324_o 325._o the_o emperor_n also_o speak_v to_o the_o like_a purpose_n p._n 319._o 320_o 321._o so_o that_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o jesuit_n and_o best_a information_n from_o abassia_n 1._o that_o they_o abhor_v or_o refuse_v the_o papal_a government_n 2._o and_o that_o for_o this_o they_o plead_v tradition_n and_o antiquity_n and_o the_o same_o be_v notorious_a of_o the_o greek_a armenian_a and_o other_o oriental_a church_n how_o large_a they_o be_v in_o the_o east_n when_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr vitriaco_n be_v there_o i_o have_v former_o show_v out_o of_o his_o word_n who_o say_v that_o those_o eastern_a christian_n be_v more_o than_o either_o the_o greek_a or_o latin_a church_n and_o as_o the_o greek_n anathematise_v the_o pope_n every_o year_n so_o the_o rest_n be_v know_v to_o reject_v he_o to_o say_v that_o these_o be_v heretic_n and_o not_o the_o church_n be_v but_o to_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o fit_a for_o contempt_n than_o a_o answer_n that_o all_o such_o rejecter_n of_o the_o papacy_n be_v the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o profess_a christian_n be_v past_a doubt_n 2._o and_o that_o greek_n armenian_n etc._n etc._n plead_v tradition_n and_o the_o judgement_n and_o custom_n of_o their_o forefather_n for_o what_o they_o hold_v be_v so_o far_o past_a question_n that_o i_o will_v not_o vain_o waste_v time_n in_o cite_v author_n to_o prove_v it_o even_o the_o papist_n confess_v it_o when_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o these_o church_n join_v with_o they_o in_o plead_v for_o tradition_n be_v not_o then_o the_o consequence_n clear_a which_o w._n 1_n be_v so_o angry_a at_o i_o know_v not_o what_o can_v be_v say_v against_o it_o unless_o that_o both_o the_o greek_n and_o protestant_n do_v confess_v that_o once_o they_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o greek_n say_v that_o they_o be_v never_o under_o he_o as_o a_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n set_v up_o by_o god_n but_o as_o the_o primate_n of_o one_o empire_n set_v up_o by_o man_n upon_o such_o reason_n the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n as_o be_v alterable_a as_o well_o as_o unnecessary_a i_o have_v prove_v this_o full_o before_o 1._o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 2._o from_o their_o equal_v and_o after_o prefer_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o pretend_v not_o to_o a_o divine_a right_n and_o that_o as_o over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o they_o be_v not_o so_o blind_a as_o to_o set_v up_o a_o humane_a law_n above_o that_o which_o they_o believe_v to_o be_v divine_a many_o other_o proof_n i_o give_v and_o even_o the_o protestant_n hold_v that_o in_o reject_v the_o papacy_n they_o follow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n however_o some_o country_n where_o they_o live_v and_o their_o progenitor_n fall_v under_o the_o papal_a error_n or_o terror_n there_o be_v some_o late_a papist_n that_o think_v that_o what_o be_v hold_v in_o this_o age_n be_v certain_o hold_v in_o the_o former_a and_o that_o no_o country_n tradition_n can_v be_v false_a which_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o experience_n but_o if_o other_o country_n tradition_n may_v be_v false_a so_o may_v the_o roman_a niceph._n say_v of_o the_o armenian_n they_o do_v these_o thing_n from_o tradition_n which_o rest_v on_o no_o reason_n and_o their_o ancient_a legislator_n and_o doctor_n do_v calumnious_o boast_v that_o gregory_n the_o bishop_n of_o great_a armenia_n deliver_v they_o by_o hand_n &c_n &c_n l._n 18._o c._n 54._o and_o the_o abassian_o that_o receive_v the_o gospel_n from_o the_o eunuch_n and_o st._n matthew_n be_v before_o too_o much_o addict_v to_o some_o jewish_a ceremony_n and_o never_o cure_v of_o they_o retain_v they_o as_o by_o tradition_n to_o this_o day_n and_o it_o be_v know_v how_o tradition_n differ_v about_o easter-day_n and_o the_o millenaries_n opinion_n by_o all_o this_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n take_v the_o
socrates_n sozomene_n theodoret_n evagrius_n procopius_n victor_n nicephorus_n etc._n etc._n and_o judge_v as_o you_o see_v cause_n especial_o if_o you_o will_v also_o read_v but_o the_o work_n of_o tertullian_n cyprian_n nazianzen_n basil_n hilary_n and_o the_o true_a act_n of_o the_o old_a council_n 5._o i_o add_v the_o equalize_a the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n which_o he_o deny_v against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o council_n i_o may_v add_v the_o after_o prefer_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n the_o oft_o contempt_n and_o excommunication_n of_o he_o the_o alter_n of_o church_n power_n ordinary_o by_o the_o emperor_n be_v iustinian_n make_v justiniana_n prima_fw-la and_o secunda_fw-la to_o be_v absolute_a and_o under_o no_o patriarch_n as_o be_v carthage_n and_o say_v pet._n a_o marca_n and_o many_o other_o heraclea_n pontus_n and_o asia_n long_o the_o manage_n of_o many_o council_n without_o he_o and_o pass_v canon_n as_o calce_v 28._o against_o he_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o ephes._n 2._o go_v against_o his_o legate_n and_o that_o under_o a_o most_o pious_a and_o excellent_a prince_n theodos._n 2._o that_o use_v cyril_n and_o make_v he_o precedent_n ephes._n 1._o and_o dioscorous_a ephes._n second_o and_o countenance_n this_o council_n against_o the_o pope_n when_o zeno_n carry_v on_o his_o henoticon_n and_o anastasius_n his_o reconciliation_n how_o little_a do_v he_o or_o any_o of_o the_o eastern_a church_n stick_v at_o the_o pope_n dissent_n no_o nor_o justinian_n when_o he_o turn_v to_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o apththartodocitae_fw-la and_o when_o he_o drag_v vigilius_n as_o some_o historian_n say_v with_o a_o rope_n instance_n may_v be_v multiply_v §_o 32._o my_o 6_o proof_n of_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o papal_a sovereignty_n be_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o own_o great_a bishop_n where_o i_o cite_v greg._n one_a his_o word_n so_o plain_a and_o large_a against_o a_o universal_a bishop_n or_o pastor_n as_o plain_a can_v scarce_o be_v speak_v and_o answer_v bellarmine_n word_n against_o it_o and_o i_o shall_v take_v the_o impartial_a reader_n to_o need_v no_o more_o answer_n to_o w_n i._n than_o even_o to_o read_v the_o word_n of_o gregory_n themselves_o only_o note_v that_o this_o john_n of_o constantinople_n that_o claim_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n be_v a_o man_n of_o more_o than_o ordinary_a mortification_n and_o contempt_n of_o worldly_a thing_n for_o his_o poverty_n and_o great_a fast_v call_v johannes_n jejunus_fw-la and_o therefore_o not_o like_a to_o do_v it_o out_o of_o any_o extraordinary_a worldliness_n and_o pride_n and_o also_o that_o gregory_n be_v of_o so_o little_a power_n himself_o be_v then_o out_o of_o the_o empire_n under_o other_o power_n for_o the_o most_o part_n that_o he_o do_v not_o blame_v john_n as_o for_o claim_v that_o which_o he_o have_v right_a to_o but_o that_o which_o no_o bishop_n at_o all_o have_v right_o to_o the_o case_n be_v most_o plain_a §_o 33._o my_o seven_o proof_n be_v the_o papist_n themselves_o confess_v that_o multitude_n of_o christian_n if_o not_o most_o by_o far_o have_v be_v the_o opposer_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o none_o of_o his_o subject_n therefore_o there_o have_v be_v visible_a church_n of_o such_o to_o this_o he_o grant_v the_o antecedent_n of_o christian_n net_n univocal_o so_o call_v but_o of_o no_o other_o answ._n here_o he_o intimate_v that_o most_o of_o the_o profess_a christian_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o univocal_o christian_n by_o profession_n but_o equivocal_o only_a and_o who_o will_v easy_o believe_v such_o teacher_n as_o unchristen_v most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n any_o sect_n may_v take_v that_o course_n their_o sense_n be_v this_o none_o be_v christian_n indeed_o but_o only_o those_o that_o be_v subject_n to_o the_o pope_n therefore_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v his_o subject_n just_o so_o the_o donatist_n and_o some_o foreign_a anabaptist_n take_v it_o but_o for_o grant_v that_o none_o be_v christian_n but_o those_o that_o be_v baptise_a at_o age_n and_o then_o the_o inference_n will_v be_v plausible_a that_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v against_o infant-baptism_n §_o 34._o to_o ae●…eas_n silvius_n pope_n pius_n 2d_o word_n that_o small_a regard_n be_v have_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n before_o the_o nicene_n council_n he_o reply_v that_o he_o mean_v not_o so_o small_a as_o not_o to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o other_o church_n else_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v introduce_v a_o new_a government_n answ._n his_o word_n be_v plain_a and_o all_o history_n of_o those_o time_n confirm_v they_o no_o one_o church_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v any_o government_n over_o other_o but_o what_o be_v for_o mere_a concord_n by_o free_a consent_n at_o least_o before_o constantine_n give_v it_o they_o and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n that_o intimate_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v ruler_n of_o all_o the_o world_n of_o christian_n but_o his_o power_n be_v mention_v as_o limit_v to_o his_o precinct_n and_o the_o like_v give_v to_o alexandria_n yet_o innovation_n in_o give_v power_n to_o patriarch_n be_v no_o wonder_n in_o council_n how_o else_o come_v constantinople_n and_o jerusalem_n to_o be_v patriarch_n be_v it_o not_o by_o innovation_n §_o 34._o next_o he_o say_v i_o cite_v goldastus_n but_o where_o the_o lord_n know_v answ._n i_o perceive_v the_o man_n be_v a_o stranger_n to_o goldastus_n who_o have_v gather_v a_o multitude_n of_o old_a writer_n against_o the_o papacy_n for_o prince_n right_n and_o bind_v they_o in_o many_o great_a volume_n de_fw-fr monarchia_fw-la &_o constitut._n imperial_a i_o cite_v no_o particular_a word_n but_o all_o these_o great_a volume_n of_o many_o author_n of_o those_o time_n show_v the_o opposition_n to_o papal_a claim_n §_o 35._o his_o say_n that_o the_o schismatical_a greek_n be_v not_o univocal_a christian_n be_v no_o more_o regardable_a than_o the_o greek_n anathematise_v papist_n §_o 36._o my_o plain_a testimony_n of_o their_o reynerius_n armeniorum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o aethiopum_fw-la &_o induorum_fw-la &_o caeterae_fw-la quas_fw-la apostoli_fw-la converterunt_fw-la non_fw-la subsunt_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la romanae_fw-la he_o first_o cavil_v at_o my_o saying_n be_v not_o under_o instead_o of_o be_v not_o not_o see_v that_o i_o only_o recite_v the_o assertion_n as_o utter_v by_o reynerius_n so_o long_o ago_o and_o must_v i_o not_o say_v that_o he_o say_v than_o they_o be_v not_o under_o if_o he_o so_o long_o ago_o say_v they_o be_v not_o 2._o but_o he_o will_v persuade_v the_o credulous_a that_o this_o speak_v of_o they_o but_o as_o schismatic_n as_o alexandria_n antioch_n constantinople_n be_v not_o now_o under_o rome_n but_o have_v be_v answ_n but_o those_o that_o will_v be_v satisfy_v with_o force_a abuse_n of_o word_n may_v believe_v any_o thing_n that_o a_o priest_n will_v say_v the_o context_n confute_v you_o you_o do_v not_o pretend_v that_o india_n turn_v from_o you_o and_o be_v under_o you_o by_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n he_o plain_o mean_v those_o without_o the_o empire_n as_o be_v none_o of_o the_o province_n put_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o of_o old_a claim_v by_o the_o pope_n §_o 37._o i_o cite_v melch._n canus_n word_n loc._n l._n 6._o c._n 7._o fol._n 201._o not_o only_o the_o greek_n but_o almost_o all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v vehement_o seek_v to_o destroy_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o indeed_o they_o have_v on_o their_o side_n both_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n and_o the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v never_o prevail_v to_o abrogate_v the_o power_n of_o the_o one_o roman_a pope_n to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o 1._o canus_n speak_v of_o different_a time_n not_o conjunct_o 2._o and_o he_o take_v they_o not_o for_o univocal_a christian_n and_o here_o he_o find_v a_o root_n of_o rebellion_n q._n d._n most_o of_o the_o country_n rebel_v against_o the_o king_n ergo_fw-la he_o have_v no_o authority_n over_o they_o answ._n our_o question_n here_o be_v only_o of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n whether_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la most_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n have_v not_o be_v against_o the_o papacy_n this_o canus_n assert_v therefore_o i_o seek_v no_o more_o and_o when_o you_o have_v prove_v they_o no_o christian_n or_o rebel_n i_o shall_v consider_v your_o proof_n 2._o have_v he_o mean_v only_o the_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n per_fw-la vice_n it_o have_v signify_v nothing_o to_o his_o purpose_n for_o that_o have_v be_v no_o strength_n but_o may_v have_v be_v some_o inconsiderable_a town_n at_o a_o time_n 3._o but_o that_o all_o church-history_n may_v help_v we_o better_a to_o understand_v his_o word_n that_o tell_v we_o oft_o
it_o be_v at_o once_o special_o when_o binnius_n say_v that_o at_o eph._n 2._o council_n only_a peter_n ship_n escape_v drown_v as_o to_o his_o cavil_v at_o my_o translation_n whether_o ab_fw-la aliis_fw-la plerisque_fw-la totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la episcopis_fw-la be_v not_o to_o be_v translate_v if_o not_o almost_o all_o the_o rest_n at_o least_o most_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n rather_o than_o very_o many_o other_o i_o leave_v to_o the_o ordinary_a reader_n judgement_n and_o as_o for_o either_o canus_n or_o his_o own_o say_n that_o all_o these_o the_o greek_n and_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n and_o the_o arm_a emperor_n be_v all_o schismatic_n heretic_n and_o no_o christian_n but_o equivocal_o it_o be_v no_o weak_a proof_n of_o the_o falseness_n of_o their_o cause_n and_o tyranny_n that_o can_v stand_v without_o unchristen_v most_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n in_o the_o world_n with_o such_o emperor_n canus_n his_o confession_n of_o the_o historical_a truth_n may_v be_v plead_v by_o i_o while_o i_o hate_v their_o rob_v christ_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o church_n because_o they_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n §_o 38._o my_o eight_o proof_n of_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o papal_a sovereignty_n be_v from_o historical_a testimony_n that_o the_o papal_a sovereignty_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n nor_o own_a by_o the_o ancient_n this_o be_v do_v at_o large_a by_o bloudel_n de_fw-fr primatu_fw-la and_o pet._n moulin_n de_fw-fr novitate_fw-la papismi_fw-la usher_n field_n of_o the_o church_n lib._n 5._o chaucer_n whittaker_n io._n white_a and_o many_o other_o i_o instance_a only_o in_o many_o historian_n regino_n herman_n contract_n marian_n scotus_n beneventus_fw-la de_fw-fr rambaldis_n and_o other_o that_o say_v phocas_n first_o constitute_v say_v one_o or_o boniface_n obtain_v of_o phocas_n say_v other_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n to_o this_o 1._o he_o think_v i_o have_v forget_v my_o first_o thesis_n because_o he_o forget_v that_o when_o i_o have_v prove_v by_o three_o argument_n my_o thesis_n in_o the_o four_o to_o satisfy_v their_o importunity_n i_o prove_v it_o with_o the_o addition_n that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o christian_a church_n still_o visible_a that_o obey_v not_o the_o pope_n and_o so_o add_v ten_o more_o argument_n to_o prove_v this_o negative_a or_o exclusive_a part_n after_o he_o come_v to_o this_o again_o and_o will_v have_v ut_fw-la caput_fw-la esset_fw-la to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o a_o controvert_v title_n but_o at_o least_o the_o primus_fw-la constituit_fw-la confute_v that_o and_o it_o be_v not_o ut_fw-la diceretur_fw-la haberetur_fw-la or_o denuò_fw-la esset_fw-la he_o cit_v platina_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n for_o the_o pope_n household_n servant_n to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v his_o right_n 2._o but_o i_o special_o note_v that_o both_o what_o be_v say_v of_o phocas_n and_o by_o he_o of_o justinian_n gratian_n etc._n etc._n who_o constitute_v and_o command_v this_o primacy_n and_o subjection_n to_o it_o show_v that_o it_o be_v but_o imperial_a as_o to_o bound_n and_o authority_n i_o before_o mention_v suarez_n himself_o in_o his_o excellent_a book_n de_fw-fr legibus_fw-la say_v that_o god_n have_v make_v no_o law_n of_o church-policy_n and_o if_o so_o not_o of_o the_o papacy_n §_o 39_o i_o note_v their_o novelty_n out_o of_o platina_n in_o gregor_n say_n what_o shall_v i_o say_v more_o of_o this_o holy_a man_n who_o whole_a institution_n of_o the_o church-office_n special_o the_o old_a one_o be_v invent_v and_o approve_v by_o he_o which_o order_n i_o will_v we_o do_v follow_v then_o learned_a man_n will_v not_o at_o this_o day_n abhor_v the_o read_n of_o the_o office_n hence_o i_o note_v 1._o that_o all_o their_o church-office_n be_v new_a be_v gregory_n invention_n though_o no_o doubt_n much_o of_o the_o matter_n have_v be_v in_o use_n before_o that_o form_n 2._o therefore_o the_o maintainer_n of_o tradition_n can_v prove_v that_o because_o they_o thus_o worship_n god_n now_o therefore_o they_o always_o do_v so_o 3._o gregory_n invent_v office_n hardly_o receive_v in_o spain_n be_v so_o alter_v in_o platina_n time_n that_o learned_a man_n abhor_v the_o read_n of_o it_o 4._o why_o may_v they_o not_o corrupt_a church-government_n where_o ambition_n have_v a_o thousand_o time_n great_a bait_n as_o well_o as_o church-office_n this_o be_v their_o antiquity_n and_o constancy_n this_o w._n i._o think_v meet_v in_o silence_n to_o pass_v by_o §_o 40._o my_o nine_o proof_n of_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o papal_a sovereignty_n be_v if_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o first_o age_n and_o many_o if_o not_o most_o in_o the_o latter_a age_n have_v be_v free_a from_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o papist_n faith_n than_o their_o faith_n have_v have_v no_o successive_a visible_a church_n profess_v it_o in_o all_o age_n but_o the_o christian_n that_o be_v against_o it_o have_v be_v visible_a but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a the_o antecedent_n i_o prove_v in_o twelve_o instance_n to_o this_o he_o say_v it_o follow_v not_o that_o though_o our_o church_n as_o papal_a have_v no_o successive_a visibility_n the_o church_n whereof_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v ever_o since_o christ_n time_n on_o earth_n a_o successive_a visibility_n when_o you_o have_v prove_v this_o consequence_n i_o oblige_v myself_o to_o answer_v your_o instance_n and_o so_o he_o dare_v not_o meddle_v with_o that_o matter_n but_o put_v it_o off_o answ._n reader_n see_v here_o what_o a_o issue_n our_o dispute_n be_v bring_v to_o can_v you_o wish_v a_o plain_a i_o prove_v that_o our_o religion_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o christianity_n our_o church_n have_v be_v still_o visible_a because_o it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v be_v still_o visible_a but_o the_o papist_n must_v have_v we_o prove_v also_o that_o our_o church-hath_a be_v still_o visible_a as_o without_o popery_n i_o now_o prove_v popery_n a_o novelty_n and_o do_v not_o that_o then_o full_o prove_v my_o consequence_n that_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v visible_a without_o it_o and_o i_o prove_v that_o this_o novelty_n of_o popery_n be_v yet_o receive_v but_o by_o the_o three_o part_n of_o christian_n of_o who_o i_o be_o persuade_v ten_o to_o one_o be_v either_o compel_v to_o profess_v what_o they_o believe_v not_o or_o understand_v it_o not_o therefore_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v once_o whole_o and_o be_v yet_o most_o without_o popery_n i_o know_v not_o when_o a_o cause_n be_v give_v up_o if_o here_o he_o give_v not_o up_o his_o cause_n §_o 41._o twelve_o new_a article_n of_o the_o papal_a faith_n i_o name_v 1._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a●…_n general_n council_n decree_v at_o late_a and_o florence_n 2._o contrary_o that_o the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o may_v judge_v he_o etc._n etc._n decree_v at_o basil_n and_o constance_n true_a before_o as_o a_o point_n of_o humane_a order_n but_o not_o make_v ever_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n 3._o that_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v prince_n and_o give_v their_o dominion_n to_o other_o if_o they_o exterminate_v not_o all_o their_o subject_n that_o deny_v transubstantiation_n decree_v at_o late_a sub_fw-la innoc._n 3._o 4._o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n together_o with_o the_o soul_n and_o divinity_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v true_o and_o real_o and_o substantial_o in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o change_n of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o wine_n into_o the_o blood_n which_o they_o call_v transubstantiation_n decree_v at_o trent_n and_o prove_v new_a by_o ed._n albertinus_n bishop_n cousin_n history_n of_o trans_fw-la and_o by_o myself_o 5._o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v right_o give_v and_o take_v under_o one_o kind_n without_o the_o cup_n decree_v at_o constance_n and_o trent_n 6._o that_o we_o must_v never_o take_v and_o interpret_v scripture_n but_o according_a to_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n see_v the_o trent-oath_n whereas_o 1._o we_o have_v no_o certainty_n who_o to_o take_v for_o father_n a_o great_a part_n be_v call_v both_o father_n and_o heretic_n by_o the_o papist_n 2._o and_o they_o great_o disagree_v among_o themselves_o 3._o and_o have_v not_o unanimous_o give_v we_o any_o sense_n at_o all_o of_o a_o quarter_n of_o the_o bible_n if_o of_o the_o hundred_o part_n 7._o that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n there_o detain_v be_v holpen_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o faithful_a 8._o that_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n and_o
yet_o it_o be_v the_o catholic_n that_o be_v the_o whole_a itself_o 9_o that_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o equal_a pious_a affection_n and_o reverence_n as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 10._o that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v conceive_v without_o original_a sin_n decree_v at_o basil._n 11._o that_o the_o people_n may_v not_o read_v the_o scripture_n translate_v into_o a_o know_a tongue_n without_o a_o special_a licence_n 12._o that_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n and_o other_o such_o be_v part_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o faith_n against_o which_o see_v bishop_n cousin_n and_o dr._n io._n reignolds_n see_v in_o dr._n challenor_n credo_fw-la eccles._n cath._n sixteen_o of_o their_o novelty_n see_v dallaus_n de_fw-fr cultu_fw-la latinorum_n their_o worship_n prove_v new_a all_o this_o w._n i._o pass_v over_o §_o 42._o my_o ten_o argument_n be_v if_o multitude_n yea_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n in_o all_o age_n have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o popery_n but_o not_o of_o christianity_n then_o there_o have_v be_v a_o succession_n of_o visible_a professor_n of_o christianity_n that_o be_v no_o papist_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n here_o i_o bring_v full_a proof_n of_o the_o antecedent_n 1._o from_o the_o ignorance_n which_o they_o themselves_o accuse_v the_o aethiopian_n armenian_n greek_n russian_n etc._n etc._n of_o and_o the_o protestant_n also_o 2._o the_o know_a ignorance_n of_o the_o far_o most_o of_o the_o vulgar_a in_o their_o own_o church_n 3._o the_o papist_n charge_v on_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o other_o about_o their_o power_n 4._o the_o difference_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o late_a and_o florence_n about_o their_o essential_o 5._o the_o large_a proof_n bring_v by_o dr._n field_n append._n l._n 3._o potter_n p._n 68_o bishop_n morton_z apol._n to_o this_o he_o answer_v as_o to_o the_o last_o by_o notorious_a give_v up_o his_o cause_n neither_o grant_v nor_o deny_v that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o succession_n of_o visible_a professor_n of_o christianity_n that_o be_v no_o papist_n which_o he_o say_v be_v all_o that_o i_o prove_v answ._n and_o what_o need_v i_o more_o be_v not_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n as_o christian_a grant_v by_o he_o therefore_o if_o i_o prove_v it_o also_o successive_o christian_n without_o popery_n i_o know_v not_o what_o else_o the_o man_n will_v have_v but_o he_o say_v arrian_n may_v say_v so_o too_o answ._n arrian_n be_v not_o christian_n if_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o beside_o our_o reject_v popery_n we_o have_v some_o other_o heresy_n which_o unchristen_v we_o 1._o that_o be_v nothing_o against_o my_o argument_n which_o be_v but_o christian_n visibility_n ..._o 2._o why_o do_v he_o never_o tell_v we_o what_o that_o heresy_n be_v will_v he_o not_o if_o he_o can_v and_o be_v he_o not_o concern_v to_o do_v it_o 3._o it_o be_v know_v that_o it_o be_v our_o reject_v popery_n that_o be_v the_o heresy_n they_o charge_v we_o with_o as_o to_o any_o other_o we_o defy_v their_o accusation_n and_o 4._o if_o any_o individual_a person_n be_v accuse_v let_v it_o be_v prove_v our_o religion_n objective_n be_v justify_v by_o themselves_o from_o heresy_n and_o all_o positive_a error_n for_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o sacramental_a covenant_n brief_o explain_v in_o the_o creed_n lord_n prayer_n and_o decalogue_n in_o the_o essential_o and_o in_o that_o and_o the_o integral_n all_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n so_o that_o our_o proof_n of_o our_o church_n visibility_n as_o christian_a and_o not_o papal_a be_v all_o that_o reason_n can_v require_v of_o we_o and_o so_o this_o task_n be_v do_v §_o 43._o after_o these_o argument_n i_o add_v some_o testimony_n of_o historian_n which_o show_v how_o melch-canus_n word_n de_fw-la facto_fw-la be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o how_o the_o word_n catholic_n church_n be_v then_o take_v and_o how_o small_a a_o party_n the_o papal_a sovereignty_n have_v in_o the_o very_o worst_a time_n viz._n rog._n hoveden_n &_o mat._n paris_n in_o h._n 2d_o show_v that_o it_o be_v avitas_fw-la leges_fw-la consuetudinis_fw-la angliae_fw-la which_o the_o pope_n here_o damn_v and_o anathematise_v all_o that_o favour_a and_o observe_v they_o here_o be_v tradition_n antiquity_n and_o the_o immutability_n of_o rome_n the_o german_a history_n collect_v by_o reuberus_n pistorius_n freberus_n and_o goldastus_n full_o show_v that_o the_o papal_a tyranny_n only_o keep_v under_o by_o a_o turbulent_a faction_n the_o great_a part_n by_o fraud_n and_o force_n which_o never_o consent_v to_o they_o the_o apology_n of_o hen._n 4._o the_o emperor_n in_o m._n freberus_n to._n 1._o p._n 178._o say_v behold_v pope_n hildebrand_n bishop_n when_o doubtless_o they_o be_v murderer_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n such_o as_o deserve_o be_v call_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n yet_o they_o write_v that_o on_o his_o and_o on_o their_o party_n be_v the_o holy_a mother-church_n when_o the_o catholic_n that_o be_v the_o universal_a church_n be_v not_o in_o the_o schism_n of_o any_o once_o side_n or_o party_n but_o in_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o faithful_a agree_v together_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o peace_n and_o charity_n and_o p._n 179._o see_v how_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v beside_o himself_o and_o will_v draw_v we_o with_o he_o he_o into_o the_o ditch_n of_o perdition_n who_o write_v that_o god_n holy_a priesthood_n be_v with_o only_o thirteen_o n._n b._n or_o few_o more_o bishop_n of_o hildebrand_n and_o that_o the_o priesthood_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n through_o the_o world_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n our_o mr._n w._n i._o will_v say_v that_o only_o these_o thirteen_o bishop_n be_v univocal_a christian_n when_o certain_o not_o only_o the_o testimony_n of_o gregory_n and_o innocent_n but_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o cyprian_a that_o he_o be_v a_o alien_n profane_a a_o enemy_n that_o he_o can_v have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n that_o hold_v not_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o p._n 181._o but_o some_o that_o go_v out_o from_o we_o say_v and_o write_v that_o they_o defend_v the_o party_n of_o t●…r_n gregory_n not_o the_o whole_a which_o be_v christ_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n so_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o pope_n sect_n be_v distinct_a and_o p._n 180._o but_o our_o adversary_n that_o go_v from_o we_o n._n b._n not_o we_o from_o they_o use_v thus_o to_o commend_v themselves_o we_o be_v the_o catholic_n we_o be_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n so_o the_o writer_n call_v they_o catholic_n and_o we_o that_o hold_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n that_o consent_n with_o all_o good_a man_n that_o love_n peace_n and_o brotherhood_n ʋs_o he_o call_v schismatic_n and_o heretic_n and_o excommunicate_a because_o we_o resist_v not_o the_o king_n he_o add_v out_o of_o isidore_n etymol_n l._n 8._o the_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_n because_o it_o be_v not_o as_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n confine_v in_o certain_a country_n but_o diffuse_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n therefore_o they_o have_v not_o the_o catholic_n faith_n that_o be_v in_o a_o part_n and_o not_o in_o the_o whole_a which_o christ_n have_v redeem_a and_o must_v reign_v with_o christ_n they_o that_o confess_v in_o the_o creed_n that_o they_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o be_v divide_v into_o party_n hold_v not_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n which_o unity_n believer_n be_v of_o one_o heart_n and_o soul_n proper_o belong_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o far_o this_o apol._n of_o the_o emperor_n here_o you_o see_v what_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v and_o that_o the_o papalines_n be_v then_o a_o little_a sect_n of_o thirteen_o or_o a_o few_o more_o bishop_n and_o now_o reader_n open_v thy_o eye_n and_o judge_n whether_o the_o emperor_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o western_a church_n beside_o all_o the_o rest_n a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a word_n be_v therefore_o no_o univocal_a but_o equivocal_a christian_n because_o a_o papal_a faction_n and_o a_o equivocate_a jesuit_n may_v call_v they_o so_o all_o this_o the_o prudent_a disputer_n think_v best_a to_o answer_v by_o silence_n §_o 44._o i_o add_v because_o of_o their_o noise_n of_o heresy_n charge_v on_o the_o abassine_n syrian_n armenian_n greek_n protestant_n etc._n etc._n 1._o that_o they_o differ_v in_o great_a matter_n yea_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la than_o many_o thing_n which_o they_o call_v heresy_n be_v 1._o i_o repeat_v the_o difference_n of_o their_o council_n const._n and_o basil_n against_o late_a and_o florence_n etc._n etc._n 2._o pighius_fw-la word_n hierarch_n eccl._n l._n 6._o that_o these_o council_n go_v against_o the_o undoubted_a faith_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o
sottish_a stuff_n as_o this_o 1._o when_o will_v he_o make_v i_o know_v how_o his_o sufficient_a proposal_n may_v be_v discern_v 2._o and_o how_o the_o hereticaters_n can_v know_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o proposal_n to_o other_o even_o many_o kingdom_n of_o man_n that_o they_o never_o see_v see_v variety_n of_o capacity_n opportunity_n education_n temptation_n etc._n etc._n make_v that_o insufficient_a to_o one_o that_o be_v sufficient_a to_o another_o 3._o when_o will_v he_o prove_v that_o the_o plain_a scripture_n be_v no_o sufficient_a proposal_n till_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o papal_a clergy_n make_v it_o so_o and_o yet_o that_o the_o obscure_a volume_n of_o militant_a council_n that_o curse_v one_o another_o be_v sufficient_a proposal_n 4._o or_o that_o the_o word_n of_o a_o jesuit_n be_v a_o sufficient_a notice_n to_o we_o what_o be_v in_o the_o council_n or_o what_o be_v their_o sense_n 5._o or_o who_o shall_v expound_v dark_a council_n to_o we_o when_o there_o be_v no_o council_n in_o our_o age_n in_o be_v 6._o how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o a_o culpable_a neglect_n of_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n through_o prejudice_n or_o temptation_n may_v never_o stand_v with_o faith_n if_o so_o be_v there_o any_o man_n live_v that_o be_v not_o a_o infidel_n or_o heretic_n i_o challenge_v any_o man_n live_v to_o dare_v to_o make_v good_a that_o he_o never_o err_v or_o do_v err_v in_o any_o point_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n or_o council_n against_o sufficient_a proposal_n take_v sufficiency_n as_o it_o be_v common_o in_o the_o controversy_n of_o sufficient_a grace_n what_o if_o a_o man_n through_o culpable_a negligence_n know_v not_o how_o many_o year_n it_o be_v from_o adam_n to_o the_o flood_n or_o know_v not_o who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o arphaxad_n etc._n etc._n when_o these_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v do_v this_o prove_v that_o he_o believe_v not_o god_n veracity_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o sin_n that_o can_v frustrate_v any_o one_o sufficient_a proposal_n 7._o but_o it_o be_v the_o fate_n of_o rash_a condemner_n to_o condemn_v themselves_o most_o notorious_o if_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o eucharist_n against_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n etc._n etc._n if_o the_o sensible_a evidence_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o all_o sound_a sense_n that_o be_v near_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n what_o be_v sure_o not_o such_o self-contradicting_a dispute_n as_o this_o of_o w._n i._n and_o other_o like_v he_o nor_o the_o cant_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o world_n by_o a_o partial_a sect_n but_o if_o scripture_n the_o tradition_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o most_o of_o christian_n reason_n and_o sense_n can_v make_v up_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n out_o of_o their_o own_o mouth_n be_v these_o man_n condemn_v as_o heretic_n to_o be_v avoid_v by_o all_o good_a christian_n but_o i_o have_v more_o charity_n for_o some_o of_o they_o than_o herein_o they_o exercise_v to_o themselves_o or_o other_o and_o in_o particular_a i_o will_v be_v so_o far_o from_o partiality_n as_o to_o profess_v that_o though_o pope_n honorius_n be_v a_o anathematise_v heretic_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o 6_o and_o other_o general_a council_n and_o of_o his_o successor_n pope_n i_o be_o not_o one_o of_o those_o that_o take_v he_o real_o for_o such_o in_o w._n i_n sense_n as_o hold_v a_o doctrine_n that_o do_v unchristen_v he_o nay_o i_o take_v his_o epistle_n to_o sergius_n read_v in_o the_o 6_o general_n council_n to_o be_v two_o of_o the_o honest_a peaceable_a epistle_n that_o i_o have_v read_v from_o a_o pope_n except_o some_o of_o leo_n and_o few_o more_o and_o i_o think_v that_o his_o counsel_n for_o to_o avoid_v contention_n to_o forbear_v both_o the_o name_n of_o two_o operation_n and_o of_o one_o operation_n and_o leave_v it_o to_o grammarian_n and_o hold_v to_o plain_a scripture-word_n be_v honest_a counsel_n and_o the_o hereticate_a of_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n by_o that_o council_n increase_v not_o my_o veneration_n but_o my_o great_a dislike_n of_o hereticate_a council_n and_o the_o faction_n of_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v not_o long_o after_o under_o the_o emperor_n philipicus_fw-la when_o another_o general_a council_n so_o great_a as_o it_o be_v say_v it_o consist_v of_o innumerable_a bishop_n at_o constantinople_n revoke_v undo_v and_o destroy_v all_o this_o that_o be_v do_v against_o honorius_n and_o the_o monothelite_n at_o the_o say_v 6_o council_n so_o ordinary_o do_v general_n council_n condemn_v each_o other_o but_o what_o i_o say_v in_o excuse_n of_o honorius_n i_o must_v say_v also_o in_o excuse_n of_o sergius_n constant._n for_o he_o say_v but_o the_o same_o that_o honorius_n do_v viz._n that_o he_o will_v have_v have_v the_o controversy_n and_o the_o name_n of_o two_o or_o one_o operation_n lay_v by_o and_o yet_o binnius_n can_v call_v sergius_n a_o lie_a heretic_n while_o he_o with_o other_o excuse_v honorius_n for_o the_o same_o and_o on_o this_o occasion_n i_o will_v conclude_v with_o a_o note_n out_o of_o the_o two_o epistle_n of_o cyrus_n to_o sergius_n read_v in_o the_o same_o 6_o general_n council_n which_o have_v this_o title_n deo_fw-la honorabili_fw-la me●…_n domino_fw-la benigno_fw-la principi_fw-la pastorum_fw-la patri_fw-la patrum_fw-la universali_fw-la patriarchae_fw-la sergio_n à_fw-la cyro_fw-la humil●…_n vestro_fw-la i_o will_v know_v whether_o the_o pope_n can_v show_v that_o ever_o any_o one_o of_o his_o predecessor_n have_v high_a title_n give_v he_o than_o these_o and_o if_o these_o prove_v not_o a_o universal_a sovereignty_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n whether_o the_o like_a or_o less_o will_v prove_v it_o for_o rome_n if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o heretic_n that_o give_v it_o he_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n 2._o he_o be_v but_o such_o a_o harmless_a heretic_n as_o honorius_n 3._o the_o council_n reprehend_v not_o the_o title_n many_o such_o instance_n may_v be_v give_v of_o as_o high_a title_n give_v to_o jerusalem_n alexandria_n antioch_n constantinople_n as_o rome_n pretend_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o its_o universal-church-monarchy_n and_o if_o it_o prove_v no_o such_o power_n in_o other_o it_o prove_v it_o not_o in_o the_o pope_n finis_fw-la ☞_o sect._n 1_o sect._n 2_o sect._n 3_o sect._n 4._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 7._o sect._n 8._o sect._n 9_o sect._n 10._o sect._n 11._o sect._n 12._o sect._n 13._o sect._n 14._o sect._n 15._o sect._n 16._o sect._n 17._o sect._n 18._o sect._n 19_o sect._n 20._o sect._n 21._o sect._n 22._o ☞_o sect._n 23._o sect._n 〈◊〉_d sect._n 25._o sect._n 26._o sect._n 27._o sect._n 28._o sect._n 2._o 2._o see_v they_o answer_v by_o joh._n rossens_n bishop_n bucke●…idge_n sect._n 3_o sect._n 4._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 7._o so_o all_o that_o take_v not_o every_o priest_n for_o a_o lawful_a superior_a &_o to_o contradict_v he_o though_o about_o a_o word_n must_v be_v burn_v &_o damn_v sect._n 8._o sect._n 9_o sect._n 10._o ☞_o ☞_o sect._n 11._o sect._n 12._o sect._n 13._o sect._n 14._o sect._n 1_o 1_o yet_o he_o maintain_v himself_o that_o heretic_n be_v no_o christian_n but_o equivocal_o baronius_n binnius_n bellarmine_n genebrard_n your_o great_a flatterer_n confess_v it_o and_o much_o more_o who_o that_o ever_o read_v the_o council_n and_o church-history_n doubt_v of_o it_o see_v then_o the_o impudence_n of_o man_n pretend_v to_o lay_v their_o cause_n on_o tradition_n and_o history_n i_o say_v that_o the_o charge_n of_o simony_n make_v many_o of_o they_o uncapable_a to_o which_o he_o give_v no_o answer_n for_o their_o most_o flatter_a historian_n assert_v it_o and_o lament_v it_o sect._n 2._o sect._n 3_o ☞_o sect._n 4._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 7._o sect._n 8._o sect._n 1_o sect._n 2._o ☞_o sect._n 4._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 7._o sect._n 8._o 8._o or_o rather_o the_o emperor_n for_o some_o bishop_n put_v in_o several_a name_n and_o the_o emperor_n choose_v nectarius_n a_o unbaptised_a man_n and_o so_o no_o christian_a in_o the_o church_n judgement_n sect._n 9_o sect._n 10._o sect._n 11._o sect._n 12._o sect._n 13._o sect._n 14._o sect._n 1●…_n sect._n 2._o sect._n 3_o this_o se●…ms_n to_o confess_v that_o your_o people_n have_v no_o ●…ivine_a faith_n for_o our_o belief_n of_o a_o priest_n say_v this_o book_n be_v canonical_a be_v but_o humane_a sect._n 4._o ☞_o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 1_o sect._n 2._o sect._n 4._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 7._o sect._n 8._o sect._n 9_o sect._n 1_o sect._n 2._o sect._n 3_o sect._n 4._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 7._o sect._n 8._o sect._n 9_o sect._n 10._o sect._n 11._o sect._n 12._o sect._n 13._o sect._n 14._o sect._n 1_o sect._n 2._o sect._n 3_o vid._n
christian_n and_o so_o not_o of_o the_o church_n indeed_o 2._o we_o know_v of_o no_o faith_n in_o christ_n but_o that_o which_o you_o call_v explicite_fw-la faith_n in_o christ_n common_a custom_n call_v those_o infidel_n that_o never_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n or_o who_o he_o be_v or_o hear_v it_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o and_o he_o can_v believe_v it_o that_o do_v not_o hear_v it_o most_o of_o the_o infidel_n and_o heathen_a world_n profess_v to_o believe_v god_n veracity_n and_o that_o all_o that_o he_o say_v be_v true_a if_o this_o be_v a_o implicit_a believe_v in_o christ_n almost_o all_o the_o heathen_a world_n believe_v in_o he_o use_v name_n and_o word_n as_o you_o see_v cause_n these_o be_v infidel_n in_o our_o use_n of_o speech_n 3._o the_o place_n in_o sancta_fw-la clara_n be_v pag._n 113._o beside_o 109_o 110._o etc._n etc._n the_o word_n be_v too_o large_a to_o be_v transcribe_v he_o cit_v many_o author_n to_o prove_v such_o in_o the_o church_n and_o save_v where_o after_o much_o to_o that_o purpose_n he_o say_v what_o be_v clear_a than_o that_o at_o this_o day_n the_o gospel_n bind_v not_o where_o it_o be_v not_o authentical_o preach_v that_o be_v that_o at_o this_o day_n man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o a_o explicit_a belief_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o that_o sense_n speak_v the_o doctor_n concern_v the_o jew_n and_o very_o whatever_o my_o illustrious_a master_n hold_v with_o his_o learned_a mr._n herera_n i_o think_v that_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o scotus_n and_o the_o common_a one_o and_o he_o cit_v many_o for_o it_o read_v the_o rest_n yourself_o in_o the_o book_n and_o i_o defy_v your_o pretence_n that_o this_o be_v unjust_a citation_n i_o cite_v none_o of_o this_o as_o if_o i_o be_v handle_v the_o question_n whether_o any_o beside_o christian_n be_v save_v but_o whether_o the_o nation_n that_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n be_v christian_n and_o member_n of_o your_o church_n but_o pag._n 60._o he_o will_v prove_v that_o nothing_o which_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n 9_o be_v accidental_a to_o the_o church_n for_o every_o accident_n be_v separable_a from_o the_o subject_n without_o destroy_v the_o subject_n who_o accident_n it_o be_v but_o what_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v ever_o in_o his_o church_n be_v inseparable_a from_o it_o ans._n 1._o what_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o accident_n must_v it_o therefore_o needs_o be_v essential_a be_v there_o not_o integral_a part_n that_o be_v not_o essential_a part_n 2._o you_o that_o boast_v so_o great_o of_o your_o logic_n faculty_n shall_v not_o so_o absurd_o err_v as_o you_o do_v in_o your_o major_n do_v you_o not_o hereby_o deny_v all_o proper_a accident_n which_o agree_v as_o omni_n &_o soli_fw-la ita_fw-la &_o semper_fw-la be_v not_o risibilis_fw-la a_o accident_n of_o man_n and_o yet_o inseparable_a 2._o be_v not_o quantity_n inseparable_a from_o a_o body_n or_o natural_a substance_n 3._o what_o the_o porphyrian_o speak_v of_o a_o intellectual_a separation_n you_o ignorant_o or_o deceitful_o cetera_fw-la apply_v to_o a_o actual_a eventual_a separation_n if_o christ_n have_v be_v otherwise_o put_v to_o death_n than_o by_o crucify_a or_o elsewhere_o than_o at_o jerusalem_n if_o his_o bone_n have_v be_v break_v if_o he_o have_v not_o have_v the_o same_o integral_a part_n and_o accident_n of_o body_n as_o he_o ever_o have_v he_o have_v be_v christ_n still_o but_o yet_o it_o be_v logical_o impossible_a that_o any_o of_o these_o shall_v have_v be_v otherwise_o than_o they_o be_v they_o be_v fore-decreed_a of_o god_n if_o the_o sun_n shall_v cease_v move_v illuminate_a heat_a you_o may_v say_v it_o will_v be_v still_o the_o sun_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o these_o accident_n be_v eventual_o inseparable_a from_o it_o if_o you_o will_v cause_v humidity_n to_o cease_v from_o water_n or_o separate_v gravity_n from_o earth_n of_o stone_n etc._n etc._n i_o shall_v think_v you_o have_v make_v they_o other_o thing_n 4._o but_o to_o instance_n as_o you_o do_v in_o such_o a_o be_v as_o the_o church_n dishonour_v your_o boast_a logic_n great_o the_o ratio_fw-la formalis_fw-la of_o a_o church_n be_v relative_n and_o relation_n be_v a_o accident_n and_o to_o say_v that_o accident_n may_v all_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n without_o destroy_v it_o be_v to_o say_v that_o relation_n may_v be_v separate_v that_o be_v the_o church_n from_o itself_o or_o formal_a essence_n without_o destroy_v it_o do_v you_o conquer_v by_o such_o dispute_v as_o this_o be_v it_o by_o such_o that_o you_o have_v your_o boast_a print_a victory_n over_o such_o great_a logician_n as_o bishop_n gunning_n and_o bishop_n pierson_n can_v you_o also_o prove_v that_o all_o accident_n that_o be_v relation_n may_v be_v separable_a from_o family_n school_n kingdom_n without_o destroy_v they_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o you_o mean_v that_o the_o separation_n destroy_v not_o the_o humanity_n of_o the_o member_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o subject_n you_o mean_v for_o no_o more_o will_v apostasy_n or_o unchurch_v they_o destroy_v humanity_n 3._o and_o that_o no_o part_n may_v be_v sound_a your_o minor_a be_v false_a as_o well_o as_o your_o major_a what_o christ_n by_o his_o law_n command_v or_o prescribe_v to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n that_o he_o institute_v but_o all_o come_v not_o to_o pass_v which_o christ_n command_v or_o institute_v he_o command_v we_o high_a degree_n of_o faith_n love_n and_o other_o duty_n than_o we_o perform_v you_o say_v no_o man_n may_v change_v his_o institution_n but_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o no_o man_n do_v change_v it_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o plead_v for_o error_n or_o deceive_v poor_a soul_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o therefore_o you_o and_o such_o other_o do_v not_o so_o it_o be_v god_n command_n that_o we_o never_o sin_v it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o we_o never_o do_v sin_n when_o the_o apostle_n strive_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a it_o be_v christ_n institution_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o seek_v for_o domination_n or_o superiority_n as_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n do_v but_o be_v as_o little_a child_n and_o strive_v who_o shall_v be_v most_o humble_a and_o serviceable_a and_o take_v the_o low_a place_n and_o it_o be_v st._n peter_n doctrine_n that_o bishop_n must_v not_o lord_n it_o over_o the_o flock_n nor_o rule_v they_o by_o constraint_n but_o voluntary_o but_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o all_o this_o be_v do_v by_o all_o no_o nor_o by_o your_o pretend_a head_n who_o be_v make_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o church_n i_o conclude_v then_o 1._o that_o many_o accident_n be_v not_o separable_a without_o destruction_n of_o the_o subject_n 2._o that_o many_o more_o shall_v never_o be_v separate_v 3._o that_o relation_n be_v not_o separable_a from_o the_o church_n nor_o number_n neither_o 4._o that_o there_o be_v integral_a part_n which_o be_v neither_o accident_n nor_o essential_n 5._o that_o every_o thing_n be_v not_o ever_o in_o the_o church_n nor_o in_o any_o man_n which_o christ_n have_v command_v or_o institute_v to_o be_v ever_o in_o it_o and_o if_o that_o may_v be_v in_o a_o man_n which_o christ_n forbid_v so_o may_v it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o so_o that_o be_v absent_a which_o he_o command_v 6._o that_o it_o be_v a_o novel_a opinion_n contrary_a to_o common_a reason_n and_o all_o true_a theology_n and_o which_o a_o catechize_v child_n shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o to_o hold_v that_o all_o that_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n be_v essential_a to_o it_o and_o so_o that_o the_o church_n will_v be_v nullify_v if_o one_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n perish_v by_o the_o carelessness_n of_o scribe_n or_o printer_n or_o if_o one_o decent_a order_n be_v change_v or_o if_o one_o office_n be_v deprave_v etc._n etc._n 7._o it_o aggravate_v the_o error_n to_o hold_v that_o every_o institute_v apex_n or_o perfection_n for_o continuance_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o even_o the_o explicit_a belief_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o saviour_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o a_o church-member_n or_o a_o christian._n 8._o that_o this_o disputer_n absolute_o nullifi_v the_o roman_a church_n which_o have_v change_v the_o sacrament_n and_o prayer_n and_o church-officer_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v institute_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n but_o i_o note_v to_o he_o that_o our_o question_n to_o he_o be_v whether_o the_o hold_v such_o thing_n to_o be_v institute_v be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n and_o not_o whether_o the_o institution_n itself_o be_v so_o may_v not_o the_o 10._o opinion_n be_v but_o integral_a or_o a_o accident_n here_o he_o reply_v without_o blush_v 1._o that_o thus_o i_o yield_v up_o